Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n holy_a person_n trinity_n 2,662 5 9.6888 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A09147 The Protestants theologie containing the true solutions, and groundes of religion, this daye mainteyned, and intreated, betwixt the Protestants, and Catholicks. Writen, by the R. F. F. VVilliame Patersoune religious priest, Conuentuall of Antwerpe, preacher of Gods word, and Vicar generall of the holy order of S. Augustin, through the kingdome of Scotland. The 1. Part. Paterson, F. William. 1620 (1620) STC 19461; ESTC S101863 199,694 338

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o most_o sacred_a and_o true_a gospel_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o this_o doctrine_n i_o will_v judge_v all_o man_n &_o angel_n likewise_o luth._o tom._n 2._o &_o tom._n 5._o ad_fw-la gall._n cap._n 1._o fol._n 290._o say_v the_o same_o i_o be_o assure_v christ_n himself_o do_v call_v i_o a_o evangelist_n and_o approve_v i_o his_o preacher_n lykwyse_o calu._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la eccl._n reformat_fw-la rat_n 463._o &_o de_fw-la libro_fw-la arb_n count_v phigium_fw-la lib._n 1._o pag._n 192._o say_v that_o the_o matter_n itself_o not_o martin_n luther_n in_o the_o begiun_n do_v speak_v but_o god_n to_o have_v thunder_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n and_o not_o we_o to_o speak_v now_o but_o god_n to_o utter_v his_o power_n albeit_o each_o one_o of_o these_o be_v repugnant_a to_o other_o yet_o be_v secure_a of_o their_o own_o opinion_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n moreover_o they_o impugn_v this_o article_n who_o derogate_a from_o holy_a scripture_n the_o authority_n due_a thereto_o by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o the_o which_o zuing._n tom_fw-mi 2._o elench_v count_v anabap._n fol._n 10._o say_n that_o although_o paul_n do_v arrogate_v so_o much_o to_o his_o epistl_n as_o to_o think_v all_o in_o they_o contain_v to_o be_v authentical_a which_o be_v to_o impute_v to_o the_o apostl_v immoderate_a arrogancy_n whereupon_o it_o conclude_v zuingl_n to_o have_v the_o assurance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no●_n s._n paul_n but_o ochinus_n lib._n 2._o dial_n pag._n 154.155.156.157_o proceed_v further_a say_n we_o shall_v believe_v no_o more_o they_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n hereby_o we_o see_v the_o whole_a new_a testament_n be_v discredit_v and_o misbelieve_v some_o other_o heretic_n be_v more_o courteous_a in_o abridge_n and_o exclude_v some_o part_n of_o it_o but_o not_o all_o and_o what_o ochinus_n allow_v luther_n disprove_v say_v sermone_fw-la de_fw-fr moyse_n let_v not_o moses_n be_v thrust_v upon_o we_o we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n will_v neither_o regard_v nor_o hear_v he_o et_fw-la jacob_n curio_n in_o chronol_n ann_n 1556._o pag._n 151._o say_v that_o he_o have_v rather_o never_o preach_v then_o to_o propound_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o moses_n and_o he_o that_o do_v allege_v any_o thing_n of_o he_o do_v deprive_v christ_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o that_o moses_n belong_v not_o to_o we_o that_o he_o receave_v he_o not_o for_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v receive_v all_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n that_o his_o government_n be_v faill_v &_o himself_o be_v dead_a that_o moses_n only_o belong_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o not_o to_o christian_n et_fw-fr sand._n de_fw-fr schism_n aug._n lib_n 2._o pag_n 272._o report_v buccerus_n to_o say_v if_o all_o be_v true_a which_o the_o evangelist_n set_v down_o christ_n must_v be_v true_o and_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o whether_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v absolute_o every_o thing_n set_v down_o by_o they_o to_o be_v true_a or_o no_o he_o will_v not_o be_v judge_n to_o conclude_v this_o be_v their_o design_n what_o they_o listen_v to_o believe_v that_o they_o will_v believe_v &_o that_o they_o make_v the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v holy_a scripture_n and_o themselves_o evangelist_n and_o true_a and_o what_o displease_v their_o mind_n be_v it_o in_o the_o new_a or_o old_a testament_n they_o can_v raze_v reject_v &_o affirm_v it_o apochriphal_a neither_o in_o this_o be_v they_o satisfy_v but_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o can_v suggest_v or_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o christ_n before_o have_v delyver_v by_o mouth_n and_o such_o restraint_n &_o limitation_n to_o be_v heedful_o note_v this_o caluin_n lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 8._o §_o 8_o howsoever_o christ_n foretell_v the_o contrary_a of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n morover_n what_o be_v say_v of_o impugn_v of_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o misbelief_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o that_o there_o be_v few_o protestant_n who_o have_v not_o deny_v some_o part_n of_o scripture_n moreover_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v misbelieve_v and_o impugn_a when_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v deny_v although_o they_o be_v not_o all_o extant_a in_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o name_n trinity_n the_o consubstantiality_n of_o person_n the_o observation_n of_o sunday_n for_o the_o sabbath_n the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o communion_n fast_v and_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n etc._n etc._n which_o tradition_n the_o holy_a church_n acknowledge_v to_o have_v issue_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o christ_n his_o promise_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o teach_v but_o also_o suggest_v all_o truth_n moreover_o the_o protestant_n impugn_v the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o they_o impugn_v miracle_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o by_o the_o devil_n s_o aug._n in_o quaest_n ex_fw-la utroque_fw-la test_n quaest_a 102._o prove_v that_o they_o sin_n with_o the_o pharisy_n in_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o there_o be_v no_o miraculous_a operation_n but_o they_o appertain_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n moreover_o the_o protestant_n impugn_v that_o article_n to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a church_n who_o can_v abyd_a the_o name_n catholic_n nor_o the_o name_n of_o church_n but_o rather_o term_v it_o congregation_n which_o proper_o belong_v to_o beast_n of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o the_o first_o question_n and_o in_o the_o twelve_o upon_o the_o note_n catholic_n moreover_o they_o misbelieve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o affirm_v the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o any_o point_n of_o belief_n not_o account_v of_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n who_o have_v say_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o matth._n 16._o luc._n 22._o john_n 14._o act._n 2._o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o faith_n thereof_o shall_v never_o fail_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o teacher_n of_o all_o truth_n shall_v perpetual_o remain_v with_o it_o to_o keep_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n unspote_v and_o without_o all_o wrinkle_n and_o this_o church_n be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o sectary_n themselves_o profess_v neither_o deny_v they_o but_o in_o this_o church_n be_v universality_n consent_n &_o antiquity_n as_o fox_n act_v pag._n 1359._o jewelrepl_n count_v hard._n part_n 4._o divis_fw-la 14._o &_o 21._o pag._n 249._o &_o 268._o cal._n lib._n 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 2._o §_o 2.3_o also_o consider_v that_o in_o no_o other_o procession_n be_v the_o lyk_fw-mi holiness_n of_o life_n and_o unity_n in_o doctrine_n which_o accompany_v one_o another_o as_o good_a and_o bad_a fruit_n of_o a_o good_a and_o a_o bad_a tree_n no_o heresy_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v can_v make_v comparison_n with_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n either_o for_o holiness_n of_o lyf_v or_o integrity_n of_o doctrine_n as_o for_o their_o doctrine_n we_o may_v easy_o consider_v to_o what_o holiness_n of_o lyfe●t_n tend_v as_o their_o own_o rabbin_n shall_v testimony_n give_v and_o first_o caluin_n instruct_v contra_fw-la laber●_n cap._n 13._o have_v any_o man_n covet_v his_o neighbour_n wife_n let_v he_o enjoy_v she_o if_o he_o can_v for_o he_o know_v assure_o he_o do_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n let_v he_o bold_o snatch_v by_o force_n or_o fraud_n his_o neighbour_n substance_n for_o he_o will_v take_v nothing_o unless_o god_n will_v and_o approve_v it_o likewise_o zuingl_n ●om_n 1_o in_o act_n disp_v tigurinaefol_n 628._o god_n have_v bind_v himself_o to_o give_v we_o heaven_n we_o need_v not_o travail_v to_o at_o tayn_v it_o and_o as_o for_o fruit_n ensue_v such_o doctrine_n luther_n say_v tom._n 1_o inc_fw-la 8_o mat._n they_o speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n as_o if_o they_o be_v angel_n but_o if_o you_o regard_v their_o work_n they_o be_v rather_o devil_n i_o in_o nari_fw-la in_o 1._o cor._n cap._n 15_o fol_z 161_o 162._o they_o live_v lyk_fw-mi hog_n &_o as_o dog_n they_o die_v lykwyse_o calu._n descand_v pag._n 118_o 127_o 128._o our_o preacher_n i_o say_v our_o preacher_n who_o enter_v into_o the_o pulpit_n be_v either_o of_o wickedness_n or_o other_o evil_n more_o filthy_a example_n than_o pagan_n be_v and_o such_o forsooth_o as_o be_v to_o be_v conten_v of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o be_v point_v at_o in_o division_n &_o i_o admire_v the_o patience_n of_o the_o people_n that_o woman_n &_o child_n do_v not_o load_v they_o with_o mire_n and_o dyrte_n lykwyse_o zue_a tom_fw-mi 1_o fol_z 115._o we_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v ardent_a with_o we_o whereas_o the_o work_n thereof_o have_v make_v we_o infamous_a to_o all_o church_n morover_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v stability_n and_o constancy_n in_o her_o whole_a doctrine_n in_o her_o sacrament_n and_o scripture_n but_o the_o
of_o s._n james_n for_o apochripha_n to_o convince_v he_o of_o this_o error_n it_o can_v be_v do_v by_o the_o scripture_n neither_o of_o himself_o because_o he_o be_v judge_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n neither_o be_v he_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o private_a spirit_n for_o all_o do_v make_v for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o opinion_n therefore_o to_o convince_v he_o right_o they_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o say_v s._n aug._n serm._n 191._o the_o temp_n we_o receive_v the_o new_a and_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o number_n of_o book_n the_o which_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v delyver_v to_o us._n moreover_o this_o other_o argument_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v for_o the_o church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n till_o moses_n two_o thousand_o year_n be_v without_o scripture_n only_o rule_v by_o tradition_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a testamennt_v christ_n have_v write_v nothing_o neither_o command_v to_o write_v but_o well_o he_o say_v marc._n 16._o vers_fw-la 15._o preach_v you_o the_o euange_o to_o all_o creature_n in_o which_o mission_n no_o precept_n be_v give_v of_o writing_n for_o salvation_n depend_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o upon_o book_n neither_o the_o write_a scripture_n nor_o revelation_n or_o pprophecy_n etc._n etc._n for_o that_o cause_n iraen_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o write_v that_o some_o nation_n in_o his_o time_n have_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o no_o scripture_n where_o be_v it_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o reject_v tradition_n but_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o you_o withstand_v all_o tradition_n for_o these_o be_v banish_v easy_o you_o may_v pervert_v and_o gloss_n the_o scripture_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o your_o own_o mind_n which_o tradition_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n stand_v out_o against_o you_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o the_o verity_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v corrupt_v with_o your_o fancy_n which_o corrupt_a interpretation_n permit_v and_o suffer_v we_o shall_v see_v you_o follow_v tradition_n and_o consequent_o your_o own_o invention_n to_o be_v for_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o first_o part_n be_v probable_a for_o caluin_n himself_o approve_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n comment_v in_o the_o 104_o psal_n sec_fw-la 18._o many_o thing_n remain_v among_o they_o by_o successive_a tradition_n which_o be_v godly_a and_o necessary_a for_o they_o of_o the_o which_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o scripture_n out_o of_o which_o place_n it_o follow_v that_o caluin_n willing_o will_v judaize_v and_o as_o concern_v the_o follow_v of_o their_o own_o sense_n in_o reject_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o erect_v their_o own_o tradition_n contrary_a to_o the_o write_a word_n i_o will_v most_o willing_o be_v satiefy_v by_o what_o reason_n either_o spiritual_a or_o moral_a why_o you_o puritan_n uphold_v and_o set_v up_o tradition_n as_o the_o pillar_n of_o repentance_n denigrate_v and_o make_v black_a and_o sinner_n to_o stand_v there_o to_o the_o spectacle_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n with_o the_o show_n of_o their_o head_n at_o the_o cross_n bind_v with_o iron_n chain_n in_o time_n of_o market_n your_o sackcloth_n at_o the_o church_n door_n and_o cart_v of_o poor_a woman_n through_o the_o city_n of_o who_o have_v you_o learned_a to_o punish_v fornicator_n by_o this_o ignominious_a punishment_n other_o by_o the_o purse_n and_o to_o pardon_v some_o who_o be_v fat_a and_o to_o execute_v rigour_n upon_o the_o poor_a from_o whence_o have_v you_o receive_v that_o tradition_n in_o your_o prayer_n to_o hold_v your_o nose_n in_o other_o tail_n and_o to_o lie_v groan_v on_o the_o ground_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n from_o whence_o be_v that_o tradition_n to_o fast_o on_o sunday_n and_o feast_v on_o friday_n and_o to_o work_v on_o christmas_n day_n and_o other_o saint_n day_n and_o to_o observe_v monday_n suitor_n sunday_n for_o holy_a day_n these_o &_o a_o thousand_o more_o be_v the_o puritan_n tradition_n of_o their_o own_o invention_n without_o any_o scripture_n or_o write_v word_n and_o yet_o not_o withstand_v they_o will_v abolishe_v and_o condemn_v all_o tradition_n and_o yet_o will_v set_v up_o and_o authorize_v tradition_n of_o their_o own_o authority_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o all_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o any_o age_n before_o pass_v objection_n the_o lord_n say_v deut._n 12._o vers_fw-la 32._o what_o i_o command_v thou_o do_v thou_o that_o unto_o the_o lord_n only_o neither_o shall_v thou_o add_v any_o thing_n neither_o diminish_v therefore_o tradition_n be_v superfluous_a and_o in_o vain_a answer_n if_o this_o argument_n be_v available_a neither_o the_o prophet_n nor_o the_o apostle_n ought_v to_o have_v write_v any_o thing_n after_o moses_n for_o what_o the_o prophet_n have_v write_v be_v not_o contain_v in_o moses_n neither_o what_o the_o evangelist_n &_o apostle_n have_v write_v be_v contayeed_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o general_o and_o implicit_a in_o like_o sort_n tradition_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n implicit_a when_o christ_n say_v luc._n 10_o v._n 16._o who_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o therefore_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n which_o say_v that_o thou_o shall_v add_v nothing_o nor_o diminish_v be_v that_o thou_o shall_v add_v nothing_o repugnant_a unto_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o same_o sense_n say_v s._n paul_n gal._n 1._o v._n 8._o whether_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n evangelise_v to_o you_o otherwise_o then_o that_o which_o we_o have_v evangelize_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v for_o that_o preposition_n praeter_fw-la be_v asmuch_o to_o say_v as_o contrary_n for_o otherways_o shall_v he_o be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o who_o add_v many_o thing_n as_o his_o epistle_n witness_v and_o likewise_o s._n john_n after_o he_o have_v write_v the_o apocalyps_n and_o euange_o who_o threaten_v the_o same_o curse_n shall_v fall_v in_o the_o same_o sentencen_v in_o add_v to_o his_o epistle_n in_o which_o be_v many_o precept_n &_o tradition_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n and_o euange_o etc._n etc._n objection_n the_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n to_o believe_v therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o contain_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v answer_n the_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n to_o believe_v but_o not_o adequat_fw-la and_o a_o right_a rule_n because_o the_o right_a rule_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o write_v or_o delyver_v by_o tradition_n objection_n these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n but_o all_o thing_n write_v serve_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n therefore_o all_o belief_n be_v write_v answer_n saint_n paul_n say_v that_o abel_n enoch_n no_o abraham_n isac_n jacob_n heb._n 11._o have_v undoubted_o true_a faith_n yet_o they_o have_v no_o scripture_n write_v again_o the_o primitive_a church_n at_o least_o ten_o year_n after_o christ_n have_v no_o scripture_n write_v who_o will_v say_v but_o that_o they_o have_v true_a faith_n again_o these_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o write_a word_n to_o wit_n the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o virginity_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n the_o baptise_v of_o child_n and_o the_o not_o rebaptise_v of_o they_o who_o be_v baptize_v of_o heretic_n the_o break_n of_o the_o sabaoth_n &_o keep_v of_o sunday_n the_o observe_n of_o easter_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fast_v the_o eat_n of_o blood_n &_o strangle_a mere_n prohibete_v in_o the_o law_n and_o euamge_o act._n 15_o but_o i_o will_v know_v of_o the_o protestant_n what_o scripture_n they_o have_v for_o woman_n to_o singe_v psalm_n and_o to_o gloss_n on_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o church_n at_o home_n and_o in_o the_o tavern_n what_o scripture_n have_v you_o for_o your_o pillary_n cross_n steeple_n repentance_n seat_n cart_v and_o show_v of_o poor_a woman_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o fornication_n for_o these_o thing_n you_o have_v no_o scripture_n but_o must_v build_v upon_o tradition_n either_o true_a or_o false_a qvaestio_n xviii_o of_o the_o certitude_n of_o hope_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n deny_v that_o our_o hope_n be_v with_o certitude_n see_v it_o be_v write_v that_o hope_n make_v we_o not_o ashamed_a but_o bring_v with_o it_o certitude_n and_o confidence_n luth_n art_n 10_o 11._o caluin_n lib._n 3._o instit_fw-la cap_n 2._o §_o 16._o answer_n what_o certitude_n &_o assure_a hope_n can_v the_o protestant_n have_v in_o our_o saviour_n if_o they_o defend_v and_o abide_v in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o their_o
beat_v the_o wind_n but_o run_v to_o obtain_v and_o fight_v to_o vinne_v the_o reward_n and_o likewise_o that_o we_o late_a not_o go_v the_o steadfast_a hold_n of_o our_o hope_n but_o hold_v it_o sure_a and_o cleave_v fast_o to_o the_o rock_n of_o our_o faith_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v neither_o infidelity_n to_o have_v access_n cyp._n epist_n 55._o ad_fw-la comm_n pp_n if_o therefore_o we_o see_v by_o the_o verdict_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o heresy_n must_v be_v which_o in_o effect_n burst_v out_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o bid_v weeade_n spring_v up_o among_o the_o corn_n in_o the_o good_a husbandry_n of_o our_o lord_n and_z as_o cockle_n owersowede_o of_o the_o enemy_n in_o the_o good_a field_n of_o god_n for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o want_v not_o most_o wicked_a heretic_n as_o simon_n magus_n her_o nogine_n philectus_n hymenaeus_n alexander_n &_o nicolaus_n who_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o have_v waver_v and_o be_v inconstant_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o righteousness_n to_o have_v turn_v back_o from_o the_o verity_n and_o to_o have_v maintain_v erroneous_a opinion_n and_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n for_o lucre_n cause_n with_o those_o also_o burst_v out_o other_o as_o the_o ebionist_n cerinthus_n martion_n against_o who_o s._n paul_n s._n peter_n s._n john_n and_o s._n jude_n have_v write_v discouring_n them_z &_o their_o doctrine_n vvth_z there_o manner_n the_o which_o wicked_a person_n be_v so_o drun_v in_o the_o see_v of_o heresy_n and_o delight_v themselves_o in_o their_o poisonable_a opinion_n of_o error_n yealous_a and_o fiery_a to_o maintain_v the_o same_o with_o their_o blood_n so_o that_o to_o this_o present_a day_n there_o have_v be_v no_o age_n free_a of_o heresy_n neither_o be_v the_o world_n so_o perfect_a in_o faith_n and_o religion_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n more_o than_o now_o neither_o be_v the_o world_n so_o perfect_a yet_o as_o not_o to_o have_v many_o simple_a people_n in_o it_o neither_o be_v the_o simple_a people_n so_o happy_a as_o to_o keep_v themselves_o secur_o humble_a and_o in_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v the_o obedient_a full_o secure_a not_o to_o be_v deceive_v of_o subtle_a and_o crafty_a man_n neither_o be_v the_o subtle_a &_o crafty_a heretic_n so_o careful_a of_o his_o credit_n &_o honesty_n to_o moderate_a his_o perverse_a opinion_n and_o malice_n to_o spare_v and_o forbear_v to_o maintain_v open_a falsehood_n &_o old_a damn_a opinion_n to_o entangle_v and_o snare_v the_o ignorantes_fw-la and_o simple_a people_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n prognosticate_v heresy_n to_o be_v that_o man_n ben_fw-mi forewarn_v and_o fortolde_v that_o as_o heresy_n must_v be_v &_o with_o it_o subtlety_n and_o malice_n that_o when_o man_n behold_v the_o one_o to_o be_v circumspect_a not_o to_o be_v deceive_v and_o trap_v in_o the_o other_o against_o who_o christ_n our_o saviour_n exhorte_v we_o totake_v head_n of_o false_a prophet_n who_o be_v clothe_v in_o sheape_a skin_n and_o be_v inward_o reawe_a wolf_n matth._n 7._o and_o s._n john_n bid_v not_o believe_v every_o spirit_n but_o try_v they_o and_o decern_v they_o whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o but_o who_o be_v this_o prudent_a and_o wise_a that_o can_v not_o be_v deceive_v and_o who_o have_v that_o gift_n to_o decern_v spirit_n see_v heresy_n itself_o be_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o deceit_n and_o malice_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n that_o old_a serpent_n for_o make_v not_o satan_n this_o potion_n out_o of_o scripture_n when_o he_o say_v gen._n 3._o eritis_fw-la sicut_fw-la dij_fw-la his_fw-la deceat_fw-la and_o malice_n be_v discover_v in_o call_v he_o a_o serpent_n as_o it_o be_v write_v &_o erat_fw-la serpens_fw-la calidior_fw-la cunctis_fw-la animantibꝰ_n terrae_fw-la gen_fw-la 3._o therefore_o how_o shall_v man_n of_o good_a judgement_n know_v they_o &_o farelesse_a how_o shall_v the_o ignorant_a and_o lai-persone_n try_v truth_n from_o falsehood_n sound_o doctrine_n from_o error_n heresy_n from_o true_a religion_n see_v it_o be_v common_a in_o this_o age_n and_o teach_v every_o man_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o by_o they_o to_o decern_v spirit_n truth_n and_o falsehood_n heresy_n and_o true_a religion_n i_o wish_v from_o my_o hart_n if_o it_o please_v god_n that_o as_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o true_a trial_n thereof_o that_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a and_o plain_a to_o all_o man_n to_o seike_v the_o trial_n therein_o which_o the_o whole_a learned_a &_o holy_a man_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v judge_v the_o contrary_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o book_n of_o difficulty_n as_o s_n aust_n say_v lib._n 2._o the_o doct_n christi_fw-la cap._n 6._o many_o thing_n be_v dark_a and_o obscure_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o it_o have_v be_v so_o provyde_v of_o god_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o our_o pride_n may_v be_v taym_v with_o traveill_n and_o our_o knowledge_n not_o cloy_v with_o facility_n which_o quick_o contemn_v what_o have_v be_v easy_o learn_v in_o this_o same_o mind_n be_v s_o hier._n in_o ezech._n cap._n 45._o saying_n all_o pprophecy_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scriptute_fw-la contain_v the_o truth_n in_o darkness_n and_o obscurity_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o scholar_n &_o learned_a within_o may_v vuderstand_v but_o the_o rude_a people_n without_o may_v not_o know_v what_o be_v say_v lest_o we_o shall_v cast_v precious_a pearl_n before_o hoge_n if_o the_o treasure_n of_o god_n secret_n shall_v be_v open_v to_o every_o man_n to_o amplify_v at_o more_o length_n the_o difficulty_n thereof_o epiph._n in_o anchoratu_n say_v the_o scripture_n tell_v all_o truth_n but_o we_o have_v need_n of_o a_o good_a understanding_n and_o perseverance_n to_o know_v god_n and_o his_o word_n likewise_o orig_n lib._n 7._o in_o levit_fw-la there_o be_v in_o the_o gospel_n say_v he_o the_o letter_n that_o kill_v and_o this_o destroy_a letre_n be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o old_a buc_v also_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o he_o that_o understande_v it_o not_o spiritual_o what_o be_v say_v which_o difficulty_n tert._n in_o praesc_fw-la affirm_v say_v i_o be_o not_o a_o fear_v to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o have_v be_v so_o dispose_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v minister_v matter_n unto_o heretic_n and_o therefore_o see_v the_o apostle_n prognosticate_v that_o heresy_n must_v be_v which_o can_v not_o be_v without_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o ample_a field_n for_o all_o sect_n the_o great_a shall_v be_v our_o prudence_n and_o wisdom_n to_o beware_fw-mi of_o their_o deceat_fw-la and_o subtlety_n lest_o they_o bring_v to_o pass_v which_o s._n paul_n fear_v say_v that_o as_o the_o serpent_n deceive_v eva_n through_o his_o subtlety_n even_o so_o your_o sense_n may_v be_v corrupt_v and_o to_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o simplicity_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesu_n for_o such_o false_a apostle_n be_v decetfull_a worker_n transfigurate_v themselves_o in_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n neither_o be_v it_o marvel_n that_o they_o so_o appear_v for_o their_o master_n satan_n can_v transfigure_v himself_o in_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o great_a matter_n if_o his_o minister_n can_v transfigurat_fw-la themselves_o in_o the_o appearance_n of_o minister_n of_o righteousness_n who_o end_n shall_v be_v according_a to_o their_o work_n second_o to_o deceat_fw-la and_o craft_n be_v never_o annex_v malice_n envy_n ialousie_n calunny_n which_o must_v proceed_v from_o heresy_n as_o christ_n himself_o define_v say_v ex_fw-la fructibꝰ_n eorum_fw-la cognoscetis_fw-la eos_fw-la mat_n 7._o which_o fruit_n be_v so_o manifest_a and_o evident_a that_o they_o can_v be_v obscure_v and_o deny_v be_v their_o slanderous_a report_n invection_n lie_n skooff_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o his_o church_n unknown_a to_o the_o world_n no_o in_o which_o do_v they_o have_v follow_v and_o imitate_v the_o manicheis_n as_o witness_v s_o aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la cred_a c._n 1._o who_o exceed_v all_o other_o heretic_n before_o they_o that_o with_o open_a mouth_n selander_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o charge_v she_o with_o senseless_a &_o prodigious_a dostrine_n and_o error_n outface_v their_o blasphemy_n with_o bitter_a invection_n and_o calumny_n to_o affray_v the_o ignorant_a people_n from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o by_o set_v themselves_o in_o the_o stoll_n as_o fearful_a bogelle_n to_o affray_v child_n that_o they_o may_v not_o know_v the_o verity_n through_o their_o deceat_fw-la and_o malice_n neither_o whether_o the_o church_n be_v but_o their_o synagogue_n manasse_v and_o treatn_v to_o join_v all_o to_o there_o conventickle_a like_o foullar_n who_o have_v lay_v the_o lime_n wand_v by_o the_o spring_n
bishopes_n unto_o this_o present_a day_n from_o the_o very_a seat_n of_o peter_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n commend_v the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n after_o his_o resurrection_n to_o the_o episcopal_a dignity_n of_o the_o present_a bishop_n and_o last_o the_o name_n catholic_n do_v hold_v i_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n not_o without_o cause_n the_o church_n have_v retain_v the_o name_n catholic_n which_o name_n this_o church_n have_v always_o not_o without_o cause_n among_o so_o many_o different_a sect_n of_o heresy_n in_o such_o sort_n obtain_v that_o although_o all_o heretic_n desire_v to_o be_v call_v catholic_n yet_o if_o a_o stranger_n shall_v demand_v where_o be_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n catholic_a no_o heresy_n can_v show_v their_o church_n for_o catholic_a the_fw-mi be_v no_o heretik_a that_o dare_v assign_v he_o his_o temple_n or_o his_o preiching-hous_n for_o catholic_n likewise_o in_o his_o symbol_n say_v he_o we_o do_v believe_v the_o holy_a church_n that_o be_v catholic_a for_o the_o heretic_n &_o schismatics_n do_v call_v their_o congregation_n church_n but_o the_o heretic_n beleve_v those_o thing_n of_o god_n which_o be_v false_a church_n heretic_n by_o error_n do_v violat_a the_o faith_n schismatic_n by_o make_v division_n violate_v unity_n they_o apertein_a not_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v violate_v the_o faith_n &_o the_o schismatics_n by_o unlawful_a division_n do_v separat_fw-la themselves_o from_o brotherly_a charity_n although_o they_o believe_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o same_o with_o us._n and_o for_o this_o cause_n neither_o do_v the_o heretic_n or_o schismatics_n apertain_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o s._n aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccle_n c._n 4._o say_v all_o those_o that_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n in_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o have_v suffer_v &_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o god_n and_o one_o with_o the_o father_n &_o the_o only_a immutable_a word_n of_o the_o father_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v but_o do_v in_o such_o sort_n dissent_n from_o his_o body_n which_o be_v his_o church_n that_o their_o communion_n be_v not_o withal_o they_o with_o who_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v participate_v but_o be_v in_o some_o divide_a part_n it_o be_v a_o manifest_a token_n that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o likewise_o prosper_v say_v that_o he_o who_o do_v communicate_v catholic_n he_o who_o accord_v with_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o catholik_n under_o s._n cyprian_n the_o people_n where_o call_v catholic_n with_o this_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o catholic_n &_o he_o that_o do_v not_o communicate_v be_v a_o heretik_a &_o a_o antichrist_n and_o pacianus_n say_v the_o people_n under_o s._n cyprian_n charge_v have_v never_o be_v call_v otherways_o than_o catholic_n now_o among_o these_o testimony_n what_o place_n have_v our_o reform_a to_o be_v name_v with_o a_o catholic_a title_n who_o as_o s._n aug._n say_v dissension_n and_o division_n make_v heretic_n and_o again_o in_o his_o epist._n 152._o ad_fw-la donatist_n whosoever_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n say_v he_o how_o laudable_a soever_o he_o seem_v to_o live_v for_o this_o only_a crime_n church_n no_o heretik_a nor_o schismatik_a how_o soever_o he_o live_v well_o can_v not_o be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v only_o separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v be_v also_o seclude_v from_o lyf_v and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n shall_v remain_v on_o he_o this_o same_o argument_n have_v fulgentius_n lib._n the_o fid_fw-we ad_fw-la pet._n diac_n cap._n 29_o saying_n hold_v for_o most_o certain_a and_o doubt_v not_o in_o any_o manner_n that_o no_o heretik_a or_o schismatik_a baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n &_o holy_a ghost_n if_o he_o be_v not_o in_o unity_n with_o the_o catholik-church_n although_o he_o give_v great_a alm_n and_o shede_v his_o very_a blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n yet_o can_v he_o in_o no_o wise_n be_v save_v thus_o the_o father_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n whole_o affirm_v how_o so_o ever_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n in_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o belief_n and_o in_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o not_o be_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v not_o be_v save_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o modern_a heresy_n that_o deny_v the_o artikle_n of_o their_o belief_n thaire_n the_o ignorance_n of_o heresy_n to_o pretend_v which_o be_v no_o thaire_n and_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n in_o add_v &_o diminish_v in_o gloss_v and_o comment_v in_o change_v and_o chap_a and_o yet_o will_v pretend_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o her_o name_n but_o in_o vain_a as_o s._n augustin_n say_v to_o the_o donatist_n you_o accord_n with_o we_o in_o baptism_n and_o in_o the_o belief_n and_o in_o all_o other_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n and_o in_o the_o place_n of_o peace_n and_o last_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o no_o heresy_n can_v ever_o attain_v to_o the_o name_n catholic_n how_o soever_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v it_o you_o be_v not_o with_o we_o and_o therefore_o heretic_n separate_v and_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o church_n and_o nothing_o pertinent_a to_o this_o name_n catholik_n for_o we_o see_v evidentlie_o this_o name_n keep_v s._n augustein_v in_o the_o right_a faith_n for_o no_o heretik_a can_v obtain_v the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n although_o every_o heresy_n do_v much_o desyr_n to_o obtain_v it_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o that_o all_o heresy_n be_v but_o part_n and_o peculiar_a sect_n of_o some_o country_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o small_a tyme._n profession_n the_o word_n catholic_a betokenes_n one_fw-mi universal_a profession_n where_o as_o the_o word_n catholic_n do_v betoken_v a_o certain_a universal_a profession_n endure_v from_o the_o beginning_n to_o the_o end_n and_o spread_v abroad_o through_o all_o part_n but_o those_o who_o begin_v their_o doctrine_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v ever_o name_v of_o their_o mastere_n sect_n the_o heresy_n have_v their_o name_n of_o the_o inventor_n of_o that_o sect_n as_o the_o arian_n of_o arrius_n the_o lutheran_n of_o luther_n and_o the_o caluinist_n of_o caluin_n but_o they_o in_o the_o contrary_n be_v call_v catholic_n who_o keep_v the_o universal_a faith_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v first_o teach_v and_o which_o be_v continue_v always_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o for_o that_o s._n augustin_n tract_n 22._o in_o joh._n we_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n name_n he_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o keep_v unity_n and_o give_v we_o rejoice_v of_o the_o faith_n with_o the_o name_n if_o we_o love_v the_o church_n and_o if_o we_o be_v knit_v and_o conjoin_v together_o by_o charity_n if_o we_o do_v all_o exalt_v and_o rejoice_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_n as_o well_o in_o faith_n as_o in_o name_n here_o upon_o pacianus_n epist_n 1._o ad_fw-la symphron_n say_v be_v not_o angry_a good_a brother_n and_o do_v not_o afflict_v thyself_o a_o christian_n be_v my_o name_n surname_n the_o word_n christian_n be_v the_o forname_n and_o the_o word_n catholic_n be_v the_o surname_n and_o a_o catholic_a be_v my_o surname_n by_o the_o former_a i_o be_o call_v and_o by_o the_o second_o i_o be_o make_v manifest_a therefore_o this_o name_n be_v no_o way_n attribute_v to_o those_o who_o be_v enemy_n to_o this_o name_n and_o have_v it_o in_o scorn_n and_o mockery_n that_o justly_o they_o discover_v there_o corrupt_a affection_n catholik_n the_o corrupt_a affection_n of_o heretic_n to_o this_o name_n catholik_n and_o heretical_a malice_n towards_o the_o word_n in_o so_o much_o that_o some_o of_o they_o call_v it_o a_o void_a and_o vain_a word_n some_o again_o a_o graceless_a term_n &_o fruitless_a name_n so_o the_o old_a heretic_n as_o s._n august_n cont_n gaud._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 25._o say_n call_v it_o a_o human_a fiction_n catholik_n their_o intention_n be_v to_o put_v out_o of_o memory_n the_o name_n catholik_n by_o their_o evil_a nature_n and_o quality_n they_o geve_v diligence_n to_o abolish_v and_o extinguish_v both_o the_o verity_n of_o our_o faith_n &_o the_o name_n consonant_n thereunto_o therefore_o their_o name_n declare_v they_o sufficient_o what_o they_o be_v prognosticate_a of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v &_o as_o justinus_n in_o triphone_o say_v cáme_v heretic_n be_v prognosticat_fw-la to_o come_v before_o they_o cáme_v there_o shall_v arise_v many_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n and_o they_o shall_v seduce_v many_o of_o the_o faithful_a and_o be_v distinguish_v among_o we_o take_v their_o name_n of_o certane_v man_n as_o every_o on_o be_v author_n of_o
one_o new_a doctrine_n and_o of_o these_o some_o be_v call_v marcionist_n basilidanes_n other_o saturnist_n other_o again_o of_o late_a lutheran_n catholik_n their_o name_n and_o profession_n be_v after_o the_o name_n of_o man_n and_o so_o fail_v to_o be_v call_v catholik_n caluinist_n protestant_n puritan_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o they_o fail_v to_o be_v call_v christianes_n as_o say_v athan._n in_o apol_n secund_a &_o lact._n firm_a lib._n 4._o c._n 30._o de_fw-la vera_fw-la sapientia_fw-la therefore_o heretic_n and_o there_o reform_a faith_n be_v not_o learn_v of_o the_o apostle_n father_n and_o predecessor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o partly_o borrow_v of_o some_o other_o heresy_n or_o partly_o by_o fantastical_a and_o new_a invention_n and_o so_o no_o faith_n but_o invention_n neither_o apostolical_a but_o pharisaical_a man_n the_o reform_a faith_n ●is_fw-la lyk_fw-mi a_o paint_v man_n nether_a catholic_a but_o particular_a which_o be_v no_o more_o faith_n in_o effect_n than_o a_o paint_a man_n be_v a_o man_n for_o this_o cause_n s._n hieron_n epist._n ad_fw-la pamach_n reproach_n &_o tax_v the_o heretic_n say_v wheir_o for_o after_o fourhundrith_v year_n past_a labour_n you_o to_o teach_v which_o before_o we_o have_v not_o know_v for_o unto_o this_o present_a day_n know_v the_o world_n wes_z catholik_n christian_n before_o their_o faith_n be_v know_v without_o your_o doctrine_n the_o world_n be_v christian_a and_o tertull._n de_fw-fr praes_fw-la heretic_n repelle_n their_o vain_a boast_n concern_v any_o catholic_a title_n say_v who_o be_v you_o from_o whence_o and_o when_o come_v you_o where_o have_v you_o lurk_v so_o long_o and_o s._n august_n no_o less_o scorn_v they_o say_v to_o the_o donat._n come_v s._n aug._n admiration_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v come_v from_o whence_o have_v you_o appear_v of_o what_o soil_n have_v you_o sprunge_v out_o over_o what_o sea_n have_v you_o come_v or_o what_o heaven_n have_v you_o fall_v from_o and_o likewise_o opt._n melet._n lib._n 2._o contr_n parm._n say_v in_o derision_n to_o the_o heretic_n church_n opt._n mel._n deride_v they_o ask_v the_o original_n of_o their_o church_n show_v the_o original_n of_o your_o church_n who_o will_v challenge_v to_o you_o the_o holy_a catholick-church_n and_o as_o valer._n max._n lib._n 6._o in_o principio_fw-la say_v for_o conclusion_n that_o as_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a pledge_n of_o humane_a salvation_n belevere_n as_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v a_o safeguard_n to_o salvation_n so_o be_v the_o catholic_a name_n a_o safeguard_n to_o all_o belevere_n and_o a_o safeguard_n for_o man_n so_o be_v this_o name_n catholic_a a_o safeguard_n to_o all_o christian_a believer_n and_o theirfor_o we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o adheere_v and_o join_v ourself_o to_o the_o catholik-church_n and_o not_o to_o your_o reform_a which_o have_v no_o affinity_n nor_o any_o thing_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n or_o name_n in_o it_o morover_n these_o and_o diverse_a reason_n persuade_v i_o catholic_a reason_n persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v the_o roman-church_n to_o be_v catholic_a the_o only_a roman_a catholik_n faith_n to_o be_v accept_v as_o true_a apostolical_a doctrine_n but_o you_o and_o other_o suchlyk_fw-mi under_o pretext_n colour_n of_o reformation_n to_o be_v repudiat_fw-la as_o very_o fleet_a dregs_n of_o heresy_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v difficile_a to_o prove_v for_o the_o apostle_n say_v ephes_n 4._o that_o there_o be_v one_o come_fw-mi and_o save_v faith_n in_o express_v these_o word_n there_o be_v one_o god_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n munch_v this_o church_n be_v praise_v of_o the_o apostle_n own_o munch_v and_o first_o for_o that_o be_v the_o true_a and_o apostolical_a faith_n which_o the_o apostel_n praise_v god_n and_o write_v the_o roman_n cap._n 1._o do_v say_v your_o faith_n be_v publish_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v hate_v and_o dispraise_v by_o name_n of_o papistry_n and_o proprie_fw-la be_v that_o same_o roman_a faith_n calumniate_v this_o catholic_a church_n be_v hate_v of_o all_o heretic_n and_o calumniate_v see_v no_o man_n as_o yet_o by_o any_o sure_a reason_n can_v show_v the_o roman_a church_n from_o that_o time_n to_o discrepat_fw-la or_o disagree_v in_o any_o substantial_a point_n or_o that_o either_o bishope_n counsel_n or_o any_o catholic_n person_n do_v dissent_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o essentialle_n or_o yet_o the_o pastor_n of_o our_o church_n essentialle_n among_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v no_o variance_n in_o essentialle_n at_o any_o time_n to_o vary_v from_o they_o in_o substantial_a thing_n yea_o in_o the_o smal-l_a article_n what_o soever_o but_o all_o to_o accord_v and_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o to_o favour_n no_o opinion_n of_o heresy_n therefore_o our_o papistical_a and_o roman_a faith_n have_v obtain_v the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o apostolical_a name_n that_o richtly_a other_o sect_n discover_v this_o be_v only_o to_o be_v adjudge_v and_o believe_v of_o all_o man_n for_o true_a catholic_n and_o apostolical_a and_o you_o for_o heresy_n revelation_n true_a faith_n most_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v of_o hear_v and_o not_o by_o read_v of_o book_n or_o revelation_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o who_o ordinary_o declare_v or_o teach_v to_o any_o other_o it_o must_v be_v first_o by_o the_o ear_n receive_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o apostell_n affirm_v rom._n 10._o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v be_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o will_v say_v true_a faith_n be_v conceive_v not_o immediate_o by_o revelation_n or_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v hard_o of_o the_o preacher_n and_o mediate_o by_o external_a doctrine_n and_o the_o doctrine_n true_o that_o be_v hard_a or_o to_o be_v hard_a consist_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v by_o the_o church_n but_o the_o reform_a faith_n teach_v by_o luther_n and_o caluin_n and_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o by_o hear_v and_o external_a doctrine_n which_o they_o ever_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n from_o any_o pastor_n doctor_n bishope_o or_o any_o other_o have_v authority_n of_o mission_n church_n the_o protestant_n preiching_a be_v nether_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n nether_a of_o the_o church_n or_o ever_o have_v commission_n of_o any_o man_n to_o preach_v that_o reform_a faith_n therefore_o their_o reform_a faith_n be_v no_o true_a faith_n the_o minor_a be_v evident_a because_o they_o can_v not_o produce_v any_o doctor_n nor_o pastor_n if_o they_o can_v do_v it_o from_o who_o they_o have_v receive_v their_o doctrine_n for_o the_o assertiones_fw-la write_v by_o luther_n himself_o declare_v the_o contrary_n who_o in_o his_o book_n of_o servile_a liberty_n church_n luther_n glory_n he_o to_o dissent_v from_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n object_n against_o erasmus_n rotterd_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o frewill_n public_o to_o vaunt_v &_o boast_v he_o to_o depart_v and_o dissent_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o former_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o declare_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o oppose_v himself_o contraire_fw-fr to_o dion_n areop_n iren._n clem._n cypr._n arnob._n august_n etc._n etc._n who_o be_v doctrine_n in_o the_o course_n of_o frewill_n deliver_v of_o the_o elder_n to_o be_v true_a catholic_a doctrine_n and_o authorise_v of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n we_o say_v luther_n believe_v scripture_n luther_n adjudge_v all_o the_o father_n blind_a &_o ignorant_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o preach_v that_o the_o father_n all_o these_o many_o age_n past_a plain_o have_v be_v blind_a and_o most_o unexpert_a ignorant_a and_o unlern_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o for_o conclusion_n of_o this_o minor_a their_o preach_n and_o doctrine_n be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n nor_o of_o any_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o no_o faith_n nether_a word_n of_o god_n jerusaien_n true_a faith_n shall_v begin_v at_o jerusaien_n the_o three_o reason_n be_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n aught_o to_o begin_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o after_o to_o go_v abroad_o through_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o s._n luc._n 24._o it_o behove_v that_o penance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n to_o all_o nation_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o the_o preach_n of_o luther_n and_o caluin_v reform_v faith_n have_v not_o begin_v at_o jerusalem_n corn_n the_o reform_a faith_n begin_v in_o germany_n &_o in_o geneve_v &_o in_o particular_a corn_n nether_a be_v it_o spread_v abroad_o through_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n the_o minor_a be_v evident_a for_o luther_n begin_v in_o wittenberg_n in_o saxony_n and_o caluin_n in_o
bring_v in_o that_o perplexity_n of_o mind_n to_o stad_v hummer_v and_o in_o consultation_n with_o themselves_o what_o side_n to_o be_v on_o what_o religion_n to_o embrace_v what_o faith_n to_o believe_v lyk_fw-mi a_o conclusion_n descrybinge_v they_o to_o who_o they_o be_v lyk_fw-mi for_o they_o themselves_o that_o be_v the_o rabbis_n of_o this_o reformation_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o testament_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n from_o unity_n peace_n and_o holy_a obedience_n and_o be_v join_v to_o the_o gentiles_n to_o do_v the_o very_a work_n of_o the_o gentiles_n and_o be_v sell_v to_o do_v evil_a 26._o 1._o machab._n 1._o v._o 16._o matth._n 26._o &_o mantein_v the_o evil_a and_o to_o condemn_v the_o righteous_a and_o to_o bring_v perdition_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n throw_v their_o filthy_a and_o damnable_a persuasion_n 7._o matth._n 7._o o_o friendly_a enemy_n kiss_v with_o a_o venomous_a mouth_n have_v sugared_a lip_n to_o lie_v o_o wolf_n hypocrisy_n under_o a_o lamb_n countenance_n to_o deceive_v 3_o genes_n 3_o o_o cruel_a wound_n under_o pretext_n of_o a_o charitable_a medicine_n 14._o judicum_fw-la 14._o o_o serpent_n narration_n full_a of_o envy_n and_o malice_n to_o our_o first_o parent_n o_o desemble_v sigh_n 20._o 2._o reg._n c._n 20._o and_o groan_n the_o hypocritall_a tear_n of_o dalila_n 13._o 2._o mach._n c._n 13._o o_o joabs_n trechorous_a salutation_n to_o amaza_n o_o triphon_n wicked_a banquet_n to_o jonathas_n o_o gabonit_a policy_n to_o deceive_v israel_n what_o ell_n be_v all_o the_o heretic_n do_v they_o not_o pretend_v simplicity_n innocency_n perfection_n religion_n and_o cloth_n then selue_o with_o the_o catholic_a name_n when_o all_o be_v falsehood_n and_o wickedness_n that_o they_o pretend_v and_o thus_o the_o prophet_n say_v they_o protect_v themselves_o put_v their_o hope_n in_o a_o untreuth_n and_o falsehood_n isa_n 68_o being_n man_n void_a of_o grace_n and_o destitute_a of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v become_v the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n to_o be_v wise_a in_o their_o generation_n and_o to_o be_v destitute_a of_o all_o knowledge_n concern_v god_n and_o so_o in_o the_o end_n to_o perish_v miserable_o qvaestio_n ii_o of_o the_o damnable_a and_o special_a faith_n of_o the_o heretic_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n reject_v our_o special_a faith_n which_o give_v secure_a consolation_n to_o the_o faithful_a luth._o art_n 10.11.12_o cal._n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap_n 2._o §_o 16.17_o answer_n that_o special_a faith_n by_o which_o arise_v sure_a confidence_n by_o reason_n of_o christ_n imputative_a justice_n merit_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o beleve_v with_o your_o self_n sin_n to_o be_v remit_v and_o to_o be_v just_a and_o of_o god_n predestinat_a to_o eternal_a lyffe_n as_o also_o undoubted_o to_o obtain_v the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o k●ngdome_n of_o god_n this_o security_n scripture_n only_o faith_n be_v deadly_a and_o fight_v against_o god_n and_o the_o scripture_n and_o confidence_n be_v false_a and_o full_a of_o deadly_a poison_n and_o seal_v your_o obcecat_n and_o blind_a conscience_n to_o go_v forward_o temenrous_o in_o presumption_n against_o god_n and_o his_o wisdom_n reveal_v in_o holy_a scripture_n which_o reclaim_v this_o assertion_n to_o be_v false_a vain_a nothing_o with_o stand_v nothing_o and_o foolish_a and_o by_o consequence_n accurse_v as_o these_o evident_a testimony_n witness_v and_o first_o ecclesiast_fw-la say_v that_o a_o man_n know_v not_o lyf_v man_n rygh●eousnes_n and_o predestination_n be_v uncertain_a in_o this_o lyf_v whether_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o love_n or_o hatred_n but_o all_o thing_n be_v keep_v uncertain_a to_o the_o end_n eccl._n cap._n 9_o v._n 1._o the_o which_o word_n be_v speak_v of_o righteous-man_n who_o be_v not_o guyltie_n of_o any_o sin_n in_o themselves_o for_o the_o preacher_n have_v say_v a_o little_a before_o that_o there_o be_v ryghteous_a just_a and_o wise_a man_n who_o state_n of_o rychteousnes_n in_o this_o life_n and_o predestination_n be_v uncertain_a secondlie_o the_o same_o preacher_n pronunce_v plain_o to_o reconcyle_v person_n with_o god_n sin_n reconcile_v person_n at_o not_o without_o fear_n of_o the_o remit_v sin_n say_v of_o the_o forgive_v sin_n be_v not_o without_o fear_n eccles_n 5._o five_o 5._o therefore_o what_o certainty_n and_o security_n can_v be_v presuppose_v when_o we_o be_v command_v to_o fear_n the_o forgive_v sin_n thrid_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n cap._n 4._o v._n 4._o speak_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o conscience_n say_v as_o touckinge_v i_o i_o pass_v little_a to_o be_v judge_v of_o you_o or_o man_n judgement_n nor_o i_o judge_v not_o myself_o certain_a justification_n be_v a_o hiden_n secret_a so_o that_o of_o hide_v thing_n no_o man_n be_v sure_a and_o farrle_n secur_v and_o certain_a for_o i_o know_v no_o thing_n by_o myself_o yet_o be_o i_o not_o thereby_o justify_v which_o all_o do_v sound_o incertantie_a in_o justification_n and_o no_o confident_a security_n as_o though_o he_o will_v say_v the_o justification_n of_o man_n be_v so_o hide_v and_o secret_a that_o albeit_o no_o man_n be_v guilty_a and_o faulty_a of_o sin_n in_o himself_o yet_o notwithstanding_o a_o man_n may_v not_o therefore_o promise_v to_o himself_o undoubted_a justification_n as_o all_o the_o father_n do_v expound_v this_o place_n as_o ambr._n chryso_n theoph._n theod._n anselm_n etc._n etc._n unto_o which_o accord_v s._n chry._n oper_n imperf_n in_o mat._n hom_n 38._o no_o man_n say_v he_o be_v under-propped_n and_o uphold_v with_o so_o great_a firmness_n and_o strength_n that_o he_o can_v be_v secure_a of_o his_o justification_n protestants_n a_o presumptuous_a temeritie_n in_o the_o protestants_n thus_o he_o their_o for_o all_o heretikos_fw-mi puritan_fw-gr and_o whatsoever_o sectary_n may_v be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o temerous_a presumption_n in_o persuadinge_n and_o assuringe_v to_o themselves_o predestination_n and_o justification_n which_o neither_o the_o apostle_n neither_o father_n nor_o holy_a church_n have_v ever_o presume_v to_o ascribe_v to_o themselves_o the_o temeritie_n of_o this_o only_a faith_n detect_v do_v demonstrate_v the_o presumption_n believe_v special_a faith_n be_v no_o way_n reveal_v of_o god_n as_o a_o thing_n certain_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o foolishness_n of_o they_o in_o this_o formal_a argument_n no_o man_n can_v believe_v any_o thing_n sure_o in_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n except_o the_o self_n same_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n therefore_o in_o particular_a i_o to_o be_v just_a with_o habitual_a righteousness_n at_o no_o time_n be_v reveal_v exclude_v the_o singular_a privilege_n of_o god_n divyne_a revelation_n which_o be_v gevin_n to_o veriefewe_v therefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o i_o can_v believe_v the_o certainty_n of_o suchlyk_fw-mi faith_n to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n which_o sight_n against_o himself_o as_o a_o axion_n to_o a_o impossibility_n thing_n in_o treve_a faith_n no_o man_n can_v believe_v false_a thing_n moreover_o no_o man_n can_v or_o may_v believe_v false_o in_o heavenly_a faith_n but_o this_o be_v false_o believe_v of_o many_o themselves_o to_o be_v just_a for_o the_o verification_n of_o the_o same_o do_v not_o the_o lutheran_n believe_v they_o self_n to_o be_v just_a but_o the_o caluiniste_n injust_a thing_n but_o the_o protestants_n faith_n believe_n falstie_a many_o thing_n and_o treu_o contrary_a wise_a the_o caluiniste_n believe_v then selue_o to_o be_v just_a and_o the_o lutheran_n injust_a for_o every_o sect_n believe_v their_o oune_n to_o be_v just_a but_o other_o unjust_a therefore_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n this_o special_a faith_n to_o be_v injust_a and_o false_a for_o wherefore_o be_v it_o true_a which_o the_o lutheran_n do_v believe_v than_o that_o which_o the_o caluiniste_n believe_v for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o object_n to_o the_o other_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o each_o one_o challenge_v a_o other_o of_o error_n therefore_o only_o and_o speciall-faith_n be_v no_o faith_n and_o no_o thing_n else_o but_o deceit_n he_o only_o faith_n be_v invent_v for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o flesh_n eunomius_n opinion_n about_o only_a faith_n his_o policy_n good_a lyf_v that_o many_o be_v deceive_v by_o he_o and_o satan_n subtlety_n to_o cousin_n and_o deceive_v the_o simple_a and_o only_o invent_v to_o defend_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o this_o opinion_n be_v eunomius_n as_o say_v s._n august_n lib._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la ad_fw-la quod_fw-la vult_fw-la deum_fw-la to_o affirm_v this_o presumption_n of_o security_n of_o salvation_n by_o only_a faith_n which_o this_o day_n the_o modern_a sectary_n defend_v yea_o s._n aug._n say_v that_o the_o enemy_n be_v so_o subtle_a and_o of_o good_a manner_n of_o lif_n that_o many_o believe_v he_o moreover_o he_o affirm_v that_o no_o evil_n can_v harm_v any_o man_n nether_a perseverance_n in_o sin_n if_o he_o be_v participant_a of_o that_o faith_n which_o of_o he_o be_v teach_v and_o defend_v
therefore_o it_o follow_v by_o this_o only_a faith_n it_o only_o faith_n bring_v no_o effect_n with_o it_o no_o remission_n of_o sin_n no_o justification_n no_o security_n for_o what_o profit_n the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o faith_n when_o the_o effect_n profit_v not_o the_o effect_n be_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o when_o this_o faith_n confer_v not_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o what_o end_n be_v it_o for_o a_o heretic_n have_v not_o thereby_o remission_n of_o sin_n i_o prove_v the_o argument_n thus_o god_n fall_v religion_n be_v a_o high_a offence_n to_o god_n god_n be_v high_o offend_v with_o false_a religion_n and_o with_o they_o that_o believe_v and_o follow_v the_o same_o nether_a have_v they_o forgiunesse_fw-fr with_o god_n but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluiniste_n in_o matter_n most_o important_a in_o christian_a religion_n do_v disagre_a and_o vary_v wonderful_o among_o themselves_o sin_n the_o lutheran_n &_o caluenist_n vary_v great_o among_o themselves_o about_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n &_o consequent_o the_o one_o part_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o other_o strive_v and_o contend_v about_o religion_n therefore_o they_o in_o so_o believe_v this_o only_a faith_n which_o be_v false_a in_o itself_o offend_v god_n and_o be_v in_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n so_o that_o in_o this_o offence_n and_o wrath_n they_o can_v have_v no_o forgevenesse_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o yet_o all_o heretic_n teach_v constant_o this_o point_n to_o all_o man_n that_o they_o believe_v secure_o and_o persuade_v themselves_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o by_o this_o presumption_n and_o arrogant_a confidence_n they_o believe_v false_a religion_n to_o the_o offendinge_a of_o god_n and_o to_o their_o own_o just_a judgement_n other_o only_o faith_n be_v satanical_a and_o devilishe_a for_o each_o heretik_a follow_v his_o own_o inspiration_n and_o be_v contrary_a one_o to_o and_o other_o morover_n the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o only_a faith_n be_v satanical_a and_o devilish_a for_o luther_n believe_v his_o sin_n to_o be_v fogve_v he_o and_o it_o be_v so_o according_a to_o his_o faith_n the_o caluiniste_n likewise_o beleve_v his_o sin_n to_o be_v remit_v to_o he_o and_o it_o be_v so_o accord_v to_o his_o faith_n but_o luther_n deny_v they_o to_o by_o remit_v to_o calnin_n behold_v how_o they_o accord_n in_o believe_v one_o thing_n and_o subverte_v their_o own_o gospel_n and_o both_o these_o heretic_n have_v receive_v that_o doctrine_n which_o apertein_v not_o to_o the_o euangell_n of_o christ_n therefore_o of_o their_o own_o mouth_n they_o be_v conunice_v for_o see_v the_o caluiniste_n say_v believe_v god_n to_o be_v appease_v and_o reconcile_v with_o thou_o and_o he_o be_v appease_v and_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v and_o this_o same_o the_o lutheran_n believe_v god_n according_a to_o their_o own_o censure_n one_o of_o they_o err_v and_o in_o verity_n both_o err_v only_o faith_n take_v away_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o according_a to_o their_o own_o censure_n and_o judgement_n the_o one_o err_v and_o both_o pervert_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o teach_v false_a religion_n &_o do_v haynouslie_o offend_v god_n and_o abide_v in_o his_o wrath_n and_o consequent_o obtain_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n moroner_n this_o only_a faith_n take_v away_o fear_n from_o man_n and_o set_v the_o severity_n of_o god_n judgement_n at_o nought_o because_o it_o induce_v man_n to_o persuade_v themselves_o assure_o of_o god_n mercy_n and_o command_v security_n and_o peace_n of_o conscience_n father_n the_o heretik_a by_o this_o only_a faith_n reach_n man_n to_o be_v secure_a for_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v as_o a_o judge_n but_o as_o a_o father_n for_o they_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v god_n be_v to_o be_v fear_v not_o as_o a_o rigorous_a judge_n and_o not_o as_o a_o revenger_n of_o sin_n but_o as_o a_o benign_a father_n for_o caluin_n say_v if_o we_o think_v god_n a_o severe_a judge_n than_o be_v faith_n tear_v and_o rend_v with_o the_o memory_n of_o divine_a judgement_n and_o therefore_o justify_v faith_n shall_v be_v lame_a if_o we_o think_v god_n to_o be_v such_o a_o judge_n who_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v a_o benign_a father_n and_o this_o their_o doctrine_n of_o only_a faith_n be_v to_o free_v and_o exempt_a god_n of_o his_o justice_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o declare_v the_o mercy_n and_o iudgmente_n of_o god_n as_o psalm_n .._o 110._o and_o in_o the_o first_o commandiment_n he_o declaire_v himself_o a_o revenger_n of_o sin_n exod._n 20._o saying_n zealous_a the_o scripture_n declaire_v god_n to_o be_v a_o just_a judge_n and_o zealous_a i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n zealous_a visit_v iniquity_n for_o if_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v as_o a_o revenger_n of_o sin_n to_o what_o effect_n be_v these_o place_n in_o scripture_n eccles_n 5._o the_o most_o high_a be_v a_o patient_a rewarder_n and_o suchlyk_fw-mi if_o the_o forgive_v sin_n be_v without_o fear_n again_o matth._n 10._o fear_v he_o who_o may_v destroy_v both_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o hellfyre_n and_o malach._n 1._o the_o son_n do_v honour_v his_o father_n and_o the_o servant_n his_o master_n if_o therefore_o i_o be_v a_o father_n wheer_n be_v my_o honour_n and_o if_o i_o be_v a_o lord_n and_o master_n where_o be_v my_o fear_n and_o sal._n pronerb_n 28._o say_n bless_v be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v ever_o fearful_a by_o other_o place_n as_o hier._n cap._n 5.1_o cor._n 9_o psal_n 2._o psal_n 37._o &_o psal_n 50._o psal_n 118_o psal_n 82._o eccles_n 7._o eccles_n 1_o which_o passage_n condemn_v this_o only_a faith_n which_o will_v bring_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o his_o iudgmente_n in_o oblivion_n us._n they_o teach_v the_o iudgmente_n of_o god_n at_o but_o to_o fray_v we_o and_o not_o to_o fear_v us._n and_o to_o be_v of_o no_o validity_n and_o force_n as_o a_o thing_n to_o fray_v we_o and_o not_o bo_z fear_v us._n and_o in_o this_o manner_n all_o heretic_n in_o the_o begininge_n teach_v to_o approach_v and_o mount_v to_o the_o supreme_a fruit_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n security_n forgiveness_n of_o sin_n peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o the_o set_v of_o all_o fear_n of_o god_n a_o side_n from_o one_o extremity_n to_o a_o other_o without_o any_o midst_n and_o while_z they_o place_v sinner_n in_o the_o star_n in_o presumption_n and_o ambition_n with_o lucifer_n neck-breaker_n heretic_n be_v false_a iustifyer_n &_o true_a neck-breaker_n in_o iustifyinge_v they_o by_o only_a faith_n they_o percipitat_fw-la they_o in_o condemnation_n and_o so_o prove_v false_a iustifyer_n and_o treve-neckebreekeres_a for_o as_o s._n august_n in_o psal_n 5._o say_n fear_n be_v a_o great_a saveguarde_fw-fr to_o they_o that_o go_v forward_o to_o salvation_n yet_o not_o in_o security_n in_o this_o lyf_v for_o if_o the_o apostell_n who_o know_v nothing_o in_o himself_o reprehensible_a or_o sinful_a be_v not_o secure_a much_o less_o any_o heretik_a follow_v his_o own_o reprobat_fw-la sense_n man_n only_o faith_n usurp_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o hide_v thought_n of_o man_n morover_n this_o only_a faith_n do_v usurp_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n our_o judge_n in_o pronounce_v judgement_n of_o the_o thought_n of_o man_n which_o only_o god_n do_v search_v for_o whosoever_o in_o mind_n do_v serve_v the_o flesh_n and_o sin_n can_v not_o please_v god_n rom._n 8._o who_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o walk_v accord_v to_o the_o flesh_n they_o can_v not_o please_v god_n but_o no_o man_n be_v certain_a whether_o sin_n reign_n in_o he_o or_o no_o himself_o no_o man_n be_v certain_a of_o his_o own_o perfection_n nether_a can_v justify_v himself_o albeit_o he_o be_v innocent_a to_o himself_o or_o to_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n their_o for_n no_o man_n be_v certain_a that_o he_o please_v god_n if_o any_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n he_o be_v more_o certain_a of_o this_o virtue_n than_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 1_o corinth_n 4._o who_o be_v not_o bold_a to_o judge_v himself_o who_o conscience_n accuse_v he_o in_o no_o thing_n guyltie_n or_o reprehensible_a of_o sin_n for_o he_o do_v read_v of_o the_o prophet_n delicta_fw-la quis_fw-la intelligit_fw-la that_o be_v who_o know_v his_o sin_n psal_n 18._o therefore_o he_o pray_v to_o be_v cleanse_v of_o his_o hide_v sin_n again_o sal._n proverb_n 21._o there_o be_v away_o that_o seem_v to_o a_o man_n just_a and_o the_o end_n thereof_o lead_v to_o death_n and_o cap._n 15._o all_o way_n of_o a_o man_n seem_v right_a to_o himself_o but_o god_n know_v the_o hart_n therefore_o the_o apostell_n do_v temperate_a his_o say_n man_n the_o apostle_n modesty_n in_o his_o own_o judgement_n of_o justification_n the_o hart_n of_o man_n be_v a_o depth_n unsearchable_a to_o man_n with_o
fear_n lest_o perchance_o by_o ignorance_n he_o have_v sin_v for_o the_o hart_n of_o man_n be_v a_o depth_n and_o what_o be_v more_o profound_a than_o this_o depth_n psal_n 41._o for_o man_n may_v speak_v and_o may_v be_v see_v movinge_v and_o work_v and_o hard_o speak_v but_o of_o who_o be_v his_o hart_n penetrate_v of_o who_o be_v his_o thought_n behold_v what_o he_o mean_v within_o himself_o what_o within_o he_o may_v think_v what_o he_o will_v what_o he_o will_v not_o who_o shall_v comprehend_v this_o depth_n hear_n the_o apostell_n say_v i_o know_v nothing_o in_o myself_o yet_o do_v i_o not_o judge_v myself_o will_v any_o believe_v such_o a_o profundity_n to_o be_v in_o man_n that_o this_o depth_n to_o himself_o be_v not_o know_v in_o wkome_v it_o be_v this_o profundity_n of_o infirmity_n appear_v not_o to_o s._n peter_n justification_n s._n peter_n know_v not_o his_o own_o weakness_n in_o his_o rash_a promise_n how_o shall_v a_o man_n know_v of_o his_o full_a perfection_n which_o be_v justification_n when_o he_o know_v not_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o himself_o when_o rash_o he_o promise_v to_o die_v for_o our_o lord_n matth._n 26._o therefore_o be_v any_o man_n secure_a in_o this_o lyf_v which_o be_v call_v a_o warrfaire_n and_o temptation_n and_o as_o hierem._n 17._o say_n the_o hart_n of_o man_n be_v froward_a and_o inscrutable_a who_o shall_v know_v it_o so_o that_o no_o man_n know_v what_o be_v in_o man_n except_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o he_o and_o yet_o treu_o the_o spirit_n himself_o not_o full_o for_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v i_o esteem_v little_a to_o be_v judge_v of_o you_o or_o of_o man_n but_o addinge_a thereto_o nether_a do_v i_o judge_v myself_o wherefore_o because_o i_o can_v give_v a_o treu_fw-fr sentence_n of_o myself_o for_o although_o i_o be_o nothing_o guyltie_n yet_o in_o this_o i_o be_o not_o iustify_v himself_o god_n know_v in_o man_n that_o he_o know_v not_o in_o himself_o for_o god_n hear_v and_o see_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o thinker_n that_o he_o nether_a hair_n nor_o see_v in_o himself_o that_o think_v for_o this_o cause_n hier._n 17._o say_v thou_o know_v i_o have_v not_o desire_v the_o day_n of_o man_n and_o if_o this_o my_o day_n smile_v on_o i_o nether_a judge_n i_o myself_o because_o nether_a do_v i_o know_v myself_o sufficient_a therefore_o be_v our_o lord_n jesus_n worthy_o constitut_v judge_n of_o the_o live_n &_o the_o dead_a who_o know_v the_o thought_n of_o all_o man_n heart_n and_o understand_v their_o work_n so_o that_o all_o good_a catholic_n do_v attend_v the_o judge_n who_o we_o acknowledge_v our_o only_a iustifyer_n himself_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v temerous_a judge_n of_o himself_o and_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o usurp_v and_o take_v upon_o i_o be_v a_o servant_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o son_n nether_a do_v i_o number_n i_o with_o these_o solifidiane_n without_o knowledge_n of_o their_o owned_a weakness_n and_o the_o hide_v secret_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o justify_v themselves_o to_o justify_v myself_o against_o who_o the_o prophet_n compliane_v man_n heave_v take_v from_o i_o my_o judgement_n themselves_o god_n complain_v on_o man_n that_o usurp_v the_o office_n which_o be_v god_n job_n nor_o s._n paul_n will_v not_o justify_v themselves_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a when_o the_o apostle_n do_v say_v nether_a do_v i_o judge_v myself_o right_o he_o do_v imitate_v job_n cap._n 9_o who_o treve_o in_o this_o same_o manner_n speak_v of_o himself_o howbeit_o if_o i_o shall_v have_v any_o thing_n just_a i_o shall_v not_o answer_v but_o i_o shall_v pray_v my_o judge_n and_o when_o he_o shall_v hear_v i_o call_v i_o believe_v not_o that_o he_o hear_v my_o voice_n also_o if_o i_o be_v simple_a this_o same_o my_o soul_n be_v ignorant_a of_o and_o i_o be_v afraid_a of_o all_o my_o work_n know_v that_o thou_o spare_v not_o the_o sinner_n be_v not_o these_o sufficient_a scrupulous_a testimony_n in_o so_o holy_a man_n as_o job_n and_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o all_o man_n clear_o see_v that_o this_o their_o vain_a solifidian_n faith_n rule_n the_o protestants_n do_v plain_a contrary_n to_o all_o good_a rule_n and_o presumptuous_a persuasion_n and_o likewise_o their_o sinful_a security_n and_o impious_a justification_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o doctrine_n of_o holy_a father_n from_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o justify_v themselves_o while_o they_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o flesh_n and_o this_o verdict_n of_o justification_n all_o heretic_n usurp_v to_o they_o which_o be_v proper_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n jesus_n judge_n of_o the_o live_n and_o of_o the_o dead_a and_o not_o man_n office_n prayer_n only_o faith_n anull_v the_o lord_n prayer_n morover_n this_o doctrine_n of_o only_a faith_n take_v away_o and_o a_o bolish_v the_o lord_n prayer_n in_o which_o we_o pray_v that_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v we_o for_o see_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o man_n right_o ask_v in_o prayer_n that_o he_o have_v assure_o in_o himself_o but_o by_o this_o only_a faith_n a_o man_n persuade_v himself_o certain_a prayer_n caluin_n mock_n they_o that_o do_v say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n of_o the_o forgiune_n of_o sin_n therefore_o it_o follow_v according_a to_o caluin_n say_v that_o the_o faithful_a man_n scorn_v god_n while_o he_o pray_v forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n for_o what_o shall_v he_o pray_v for_o remission_n that_o have_v already_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v by_o only_a faith_n iustify_v baptism_n only_o faith_n anulle_v baptism_n moreover_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o only_a faith_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n concern_v baptism_n for_o no_o man_n can_v be_v admit_v in_o full_a year_n to_o baptism_n except_o those_o who_o have_v the_o christian_a faith_n according_a to_o that_o sayinge_v of_o philippe_n to_o the_o eunuch_n act._n 5._o if_o thou_o believe_v from_o thy_o whole_a hart_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o baptise_v but_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o only_a faith_n &_o by_o assure_a persuasion_n baptism_n if_o a_o man_n only_o believe_v he_o need_v not_o baptism_n a_o man_n in_o perfect_a year_n by_o believe_v this_o faith_n he_o be_v certain_a in_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o that_o now_o in_o apprehension_n of_o this_o faith_n god_n be_v merciful_a to_o he_o and_o have_v forgive_v he_o his_o sin_n and_o therefore_o consequent_o it_o be_v not_o need_v to_o baptise_v or_o to_o give_v baptism_n that_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v or_o to_o be_v bear_v again_o of_o the_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o symbol_n of_o our_o profession_n which_o say_v i_o confess_v on_o baptism_n in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o lycksort_n to_o that_o sermon_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n act._n 2._o let_v every_o one_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o also_o to_o our_o lord_n command_v joan._n 3._o say_v except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o this_o doctrine_n of_o only_a faith_n be_v false_a who_o will_v persuade_v man_n of_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n without_o mediation_n supper_n only_o faith_n be_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n moreover_o this_o doctrine_n of_o only_a faith_n be_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n concern_v the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o he_o say_v who_o soever_o shall_v eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n unworthilie_o shall_v be_v guyltie_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o let_v a_o man_n prove_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n for_o he_o that_o drinck_v ad_fw-la eat_v unworthy_o eat_v and_o drink_v to_o his_o own_o judgement_n not_o judge_v the_o lord_n body_n but_o this_o doctrine_n of_o only_a faith_n command_v thou_o to_o be_v certain_a and_o to_o persuade_v thyself_o and_o firm_o dear_a with_o thyself_o that_o thou_o shall_v be_v nether_a guyltie_n nether_a shall_v incur_v judgement_n and_o shall_v escape_v all_o peril_n conscience_n if_o we_o only_o believe_v it_o suffice_v although_o we_o never_o examine_v our_o conscience_n if_o that_o thou_o only_o believe_v but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o faithful_a corrinthian_o to_o prove_v then selue_o lest_o they_o shall_v take_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n unworthy_o to_o their_o gvyltines_n and_o thereby_o be_v condemn_v but_o luther_n caluin_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n teach_v by_o only_a faith_n security_n and_o assurednes_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o
how_o the_o reform_v believe_v this_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n to_o wit_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n sin_n cal._n doctrine_n can_v not_o agree_v &_o accord_v with_o this_o article_n good_a work_n be_v sin_n see_v that_o they_o say_v that_o all_o our_o work_n be_v mix_v and_o defile_v with_o sin_n and_o what_o soever_o good_a work_n shall_v be_v do_v of_o the_o most_o holy_a man_n by_o the_o uncleanness_n and_o the_o impurity_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v pollute_v corrupt_a and_o putrify_v free_a man_n be_v not_o free_a neither_o of_o original_n nor_o actual_a sin_n by_o any_o sacrament_n only_o faith_n by_o imputative_a justice_n make_v man_n free_a lyckwise_o he_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o free_a of_o original_a sin_n neither_o be_v we_o absolve_v or_o remit_v from_o any_o other_o sin_n howsoever_o confess_v and_o satisfy_v but_o only_o cover_v by_o the_o imputative_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n neither_o be_v these_o sin_n impute_v to_o the_o fault_n nor_o to_o the_o punishment_n as_o rabbi-caluin_a teach_v lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 14._o §_o 9.10_o 11._o &_o lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 15._o §_o the_o which_o doctrine_n do_v subvert_v and_o overthrow_v the_o very_a article_n of_o our_o creed_n to_o wit_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n justice_n cal._n reiecte_n the_o judgement_n of_o s._n aug_n concern_v sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_a he_o teach_v that_o in_o the_o saint_n sin_n reign_v all_o the_o regenerate_a be_v in_o aid_n cleave_v by_o imputative_a justice_n which_o stout_o he_o defend_v by_o reject_v and_o cast_v of_o the_o opinion_n and_o judgement_n of_o s._n austen_n de_fw-fr concupiscentia_fw-la in_o renatis_fw-la we_o teach_v say_v he_o in_o the_o holy_a saint_n ever_o to_o be_v sin_n until_o they_o be_v free_v and_o unclothe_v of_o this_o mortal_a body_n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 3._o §_o 10._o and_o proceed_v more_o deep_o to_o justify_v his_o doctrine_n of_o only_a faith_n move_v this_o doubt_n and_o solue_v it_o himself_o but_o how_o be_v it_o say_v he_o that_o god_n do_v purge_v his_o church_n of_o all_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o promise_v to_o she_o the_o grace_n of_o freedom_n and_o purity_n by_o baptism_n and_o do_v fulfil_v it_o in_o his_o elect_a it_o be_v refer_v and_o fulfil_v in_o communicate_v his_o imputaviue_v justice_n and_o this_o god_n perform_v and_o exhibite_n in_o regenerate_v his_o own_o that_o in_o they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v destroy_v &_o abolish_v by_o subministratinge_v to_o they_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o they_o be_v superior_a and_o victor_n in_o the_o fight_n lib._n 3._o instit_fw-la cap._n 3._o §_o 11._o doctrine_n sin_n to_o reign_n and_o not_o impute_v for_o a_o faust_z be_v false_a doctrine_n and_o a_o little_a after_o those_o relic_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v in_o his_o saint_n we_o confess_v they_o not_o to_o be_v impute_v as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o which_o doctrine_n it_o follow_v sin_n absolutlie_v not_o to_o be_v remit_v for_o it_o implicate_v a_o contradiction_n sin_n to_o reign_n and_o not_o to_o be_v impute_v for_o a_o fault_n for_o caluin_n affirm_v dwell_v cal._n say_v sin_n reign_v not_o but_o dwell_v sin_n fail_v to_o reign_v in_o the_o saint_n but_o not_o to_o dwell_v as_o a_o other_o contradiction_n contrariwise_o catholic_n exhort_v all_o man_n firm_o to_o believe_v &_o assure_a lie_n confide_v that_o there_o be_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o this_o remission_n be_v to_o we_o and_o to_o you_o and_o to_o judas_n the_o triator_n and_o to_o every_o mortal_a sinner_n and_o to_o those_o that_o now_o be_v and_o to_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o and_o to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o purgatory_n for_o christ_n have_v promerited_a to_o all_o abundantlie_o who_o hang_v in_o the_o cross_n be_v make_v a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o sin_n the_o catholic_n firm_o believe_v remission_n of_o sin_n but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o that_o we_o catholic_n believe_v all_o man_n to_o have_v receive_v and_o obtain_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n de_fw-la facto_fw-la &_o sola_fw-la fide_fw-la credendo_fw-la not_o only_o we_o catholic_n deny_v and_o gainstand_v but_o also_o the_o scripture_n for_o treu_o christ_n have_v taste_v the_o death_n for_o all_o church_n but_o that_o all_o man_n have_v remission_n of_o sin_n de_fw-fr sacto_fw-la be_v against_o the_o scripture_n and_o christ_n death_n we_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n but_o all_o do_v not_o apply_v to_o they_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o most_o precious_a death_n for_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v make_v the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o but_o yet_o the_o scripture_n say_v heb._n 5._o v._o 9_o he_o be_v make_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n unto_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o therefore_o we_o believe_v most_o firm_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o not_o to_o be_v remit_v in_o particular_a by_o only_a faith_n but_o that_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o remit_v sin_n and_o to_o retain_v sin_n howbeit_o we_o admit_v the_o heavenly_a promise_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n justification_n and_o eternal_a life_n condition_n remission_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o make_v to_o any_o in_o particulat_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v to_o all_o a_o like_a &_o be_v make_v with_o condition_n and_o such_o like_a which_o general_o be_v denounce_v to_o perpeteyne_v to_o every_o man_n to_o wit_n so_o far_o as_o lie_v in_o god_n who_o without_o acception_n of_o person_n promiss_v and_o give_v to_o all_o man_n abundant_o but_o with_o that_o condition_n that_o he_o do_v worthy_a penance_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o ezech._n cap._n 18._o v._n 21._o if_o the_o ungodly_a man_n shall_v do_v penance_n for_o his_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v and_o shall_v keep_v my_o precept_n and_o do_v judgement_n and_o righteousness_n he_o shall_v live_v the_o life_n and_o shall_v not_o die_v and_o likewise_o matth._n cap._n 10._o v._n 22._o you_o shall_v be_v hate_v of_o all_o man_n for_o my_o name_n sak_v but_o who_o shall_v persevere_v unto_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v save_v virtue_n no_o man_n be_v certain_a of_o perseverance_n in_o virtue_n but_o because_o a_o man_n be_v uncertain_a of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o perseverance_n in_o virtue_n and_o likewise_o uncertain_a of_o his_o salvation_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n apocalyps_n 3._o v._n 11._o hold_v fast_o what_o thou_o have_v that_o no_o man_n take_v thy_o crown_n for_o there_o have_v fall_v saul_n solomon_n iscariotes_n turk_n many_o have_v fall_v &_o those_o they_o stand_v as_o of_o the_o caluin_n some_o be_v make_v turk_n paulus_n alciatus_fw-la sartor_n blandrata_n socimus_n lysmannus_n luther_n calu._n and_o many_o more_o of_o the_o protestants_n companious_a abiuringe_v their_o faith_n be_v fall_v to_o turkism_n mahematisme_n and_o atheism_n as_o witness_v beza_n in_o the_o history_n of_o valentine_n gentille_n and_o caluino-turcismus_a lib_n 1._o cap._n 2._o whereupon_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o great_a maxim_n of_o the_o caluiniste_n theology_n be_v fall_v and_o be_v conunice_v of_o falsehood_n affirm_v that_o only_a faith_n once_o get_v never_o do_v fail_v or_o decay_n as_o stout_o cudsemius_n in_o his_o hyperaspisce_n declare_v but_o when_o we_o see_v their_o own_o turn_v from_o their_o own_o faith_n to_o infidelity_n what_o judgement_n be_v against_o they_o and_o what_o condemnation_n fall_v they_o into_o no_o less_o treu_o than_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n and_o damnation_n of_o the_o heresiarche_n who_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o only_a faith_n minister_v subject_n to_o paganism_n and_o atheism_n objection_n i._n therefore_o what_o do_v thou_o command_v and_o bid_v we_o despair_n answer_n god_n forbid_v for_o as_o we_o deny_v that_o any_o can_v firm_o believe_v &_o certainlye_o persuade_v himself_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n even_o so_o no_o less_o we_o affirm_v constant_o that_o every_o christian_a man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o with_o faith_n to_o do_v what_o be_v in_o he_o to_o expect_v the_o effect_n of_o faith_n hope_v what_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o hope_v with_o firm_a and_o sure_a hope_n in_o this_o lyf_v of_o true_a remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o penance_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v to_o eternal_a lyf_v which_o hope_n except_o we_o have_v it_o firm_a and_o constant_a in_o vain_a we_o be_v call_v christian_n objection_n ii_o thou_o speak_v a_o paradox_n and_o a_o contrary_a thing_n for_o firm_o to_o believe_v and_o assure_o to_o persuade_v thou_o deny_v and_o yet_o thou_o command_v and_o bid_v every_o one_o to_o be_v
their_o faith_n and_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n as_o ethnike_v and_o infidel_n d●facto_fw-la nevertheless_o in_o name_n and_o external_a show_n they_o be_v within_o as_o holy_a scripture_n make_v mention_v as_o matth._n 13_o in_o the_o feyld_a of_o corn_n be_v together_o tare_n and_o wheat_n in_o the_o net_n good_a fish_n and_o bad_a in_o a_o house_n foolish_a and_o wise_a virgin_n even_o so_o such_o person_n have_v faith_n without_o work_n not_o obscur_o but_o plain_o do_v pertayn_v to_o the_o church_n howbeit_o they_o be_v damn_v therefore_o it_o hap_v to_o faith_n without_o charity_n either_o to_o be_v formal_a or_o informal_a but_o the_o effect_n and_o virtue_n depend_v in_o his_o will_n in_o who_o charity_n be_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n charity_n the_o effect_n of_o faith_n depend_v in_o his_o will_n in_o who_o be_v charity_n the_o heretic_n force_v falsy_n the_o contrary_a be_v deceive_v for_o whilst_o they_o presuppose_v and_o judge_v with_o themselves_o that_o true_a faith_n chief_o be_v place_v in_o only_a persuasion_n by_o which_o a_o man_n may_v persuade_v &_o certain_o assure_v himself_o because_o of_o the_o imputative_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la that_o his_o sin_n be_v remit_v to_o he_o and_o that_o grace_n and_o charity_n concomitant_a be_v infuse_v into_o his_o soul_n with_o his_o assure_a persuasion_n of_o only_a faith_n faith_n the_o heretic_n foolish_a persuasion_n concern_v faith_n &_o that_o this_o persuasion_n in_o their_o judgement_n be_v a_o most_o true_a thing_n neither_o think_v they_o ever_o at_o any_o time_n that_o this_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o grace_n &_o charity_n which_o be_v false_a and_o absurd_a as_o we_o have_v before_o prove_v for_o they_o lie_v great_a weight_n upon_o a_o weak_a foundation_n and_o build_v castle_n upon_o a_o sandy-mount_a for_o it_o be_v not_o only_a faith_n that_o iustifyes_n a_o man_n nether_a be_v it_o ever_o annex_v &_o conjoin_v with_o charity_n &_o grace_n but_o be_v separate_v obiectio_fw-la faith_n consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o sanctification_n of_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o faith_n can_v no_o way_n be_v separate_v from_o charity_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom_n 10_o v._o 10._o with_o the_o hart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n man_n confess_v to_o salvation_n answer_n the_o apostle_n understande_v not_o in_o these_o word_n sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n include_v charity_n but_o he_o say_v the_o hart_n believe_v to_o ryghteousnes_n in_o which_o word_n he_o plain_o signifi_v that_o faith_n be_v way_n and_o mean_a to_o get_v and_o obtain_v righteousness_n but_o this_o faith_n do_v not_o ever_o include_v necessary_o the_o actual_a stat_fw-la of_o righteousness_n and_o charity_n and_o therefore_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v in_o man_n without_o charity_n and_o so_o it_o be_v separate_v other_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o the_o good_a affection_n of_o will_n requisite_a in_o man_n to_o believe_v and_o not_o annex_v absolute_o to_o the_o action_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n obiectio_fw-la faict_o without_o work_n be_v dead_a as_o the_o apostle_n say_v jac._n 2._o therefore_o as_o a_o dead_a man_n be_v not_o a_o true_a man_n so_o neither_o be_v faith_n in_o sinneres_fw-la a_o true_a faith_n without_o work_n and_o charity_n ergo_fw-la faith_n and_o charity_n can_v be_v separate_v answer_n the_o apostle_n to_o the_o contrary_a assimilated_a and_o compare_v faith_n not_o to_o a_o dead_a man_n but_o he_o assimilate_v and_o compare_v such_o to_o a_o dead_a body_n as_o v._o 26._o for_o as_o the_o body_n say_v he_o without_o the_o spirit_n be_v dead_a concern_v the_o vital_a operation_n whereby_o it_o fail_v not_o to_o be_v a_o true_a body_n even_o so_o without_o work_n faith_n be_v dead_a concern_v the_o utility_n meryt_n and_o salvation_n albeyt_v it_o fail_v not_o to_o be_v true_a faith_n for_o the_o apostel_n affirm_v the_o devil_n to_o believe_v albeyt_v not_o to_o salvation_n how_o much_o more_o a_o sinner_n may_v believe_v and_o have_v true_a faith_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o his_o salvation_n because_o it_o be_v without_o work_n which_o be_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o vital_a spirit_n and_o so_o faith_n be_v separate_v from_o charity_n and_o compare_v to_o a_o dead_a man_n without_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o want_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o vital_a spirit_n and_o yet_o can_v be_v call_v otherwise_o then_o a_o body_n ergo_fw-la and_o so_o be_v faith_n objection_n the_o father_n in_o who_o doctrine_n thou_o papist_n so_o oft_o do_v boast_v teach_v faith_n without_o work_n not_o to_o be_v true_a faith_n as_o s._n cyp_n de_fw-fr simplic_a pral_a beda_n in_o cap._n 2._o jac._n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la ●rew_v faith_n be_v never_o without_o work_n answer_n the_o father_n deny_v such_o to_o be_v true_a faith_n that_o be_v not_o lively_a and_o perfect_a and_o to_o be_v such_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o laughter_n be_v not_o full_a joy_n yet_o it_o be_v account_v for_o joy_n and_o gladness_n so_o s_n hier._n cap._n 5._o ad_fw-la gal._n when_o charity_n be_v far_o of_o and_o suchlyke_a faith_n be_v remote_a and_o absent_a we_o say_v it_o be_v not_o perfect_a charity_n and_o true_a faith_n not_o that_o it_o be_v far_o of_o and_o absent_a as_o concern_v his_o essence_n but_o concern_v his_o perfection_n operation_n and_o life_n and_o hereupon_o the_o father_n teach_v the_o verity_n and_o the_o heretic_n lie_v and_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n qvaestio_n v._o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o miracle_n wherefore_o require_v the_o papist_n miracle_n of_o we_o for_o confirmation_n of_o our_o reform_a faith_n sing_v long_o since_o it_o be_v marvellous_o confirm_v of_o the_o apostel_n martyr_n confessores_fw-la so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o new_a miracle_n caluin_n praef_n instit_fw-la ad_fw-la franc._n gall_n reg_fw-la answer_n predestination_n luther_n attempt_v to_o raise_v the_o dead_a he_o also_o attempt_n to_o cast_v out_o devil_n if_o their_o doctrine_n be_v true_a from_o the_o apostle_n how_o flee_v they_o to_o extraordinary_a thing_n caluin_n make_v for_o a_o miracle_n of_o a_o live_a man_n a_o dead_a he_o will_v have_v wrought_v a_o miracle_n for_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n i_o ask_v wherefore_o luther_n that_o great_a prophet_n elias_n and_o a_o chief_n apostle_n yea_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n so_o call_v of_o his_o successores_fw-la for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o euangel_n make_v his_o recourse_n to_o miracle_n whilst_o he_o assay_v and_o attempt_v to_o raise_v from_o death_n one_o william_n nesone_n drown_v in_o the_o ryver_n of_o albus_n as_o staph._n in_o respon_n ult._n bear_v witness_v also_o he_o attempt_v to_o work_v a_o miracle_n in_o the_o cast_n out_o of_o a_o devil_n out_o of_o the_o possess_v but_o in_o vain_a wherefore_o i_o say_v go_v luther_n to_o use_v a_o extraordinary_a means_n if_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a time_n &_o that_o miracle_n be_v not_o now_o necessary_a likewise_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n wherefore_o attempt_v caluin_n to_o work_v a_o miracle_n to_o raise_v a_o dead_a man_n who_o by_o caluine_n policy_n dissemble_v himself_o dead_a for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n and_o the_o preordination_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n as_o bol_n in_o vita_fw-la calu._n lib._n 13._o again_o i_o ask_v if_o caluin_n be_v scrupulous_a to_o sow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholyk_n faith_n yet_o wherefore_o induce_v he_o a_o new_a faith_n and_o if_o he_o have_v purge_v the_o error_n of_o the_o paptst_n church_n wherefore_o run_v he_o to_o work_v of_o a_o false_a miracle_n wonderful_a to_o the_o world_n lykwyse_o a_o certain_a ringleader_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n attempt_v to_o work_v a_o miracle_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o polonia_n who_o invyte_v all_o his_o fellow_n compagnions_n to_o be_v present_a at_o his_o baptism_n promyse_v to_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o from_o the_o heaven_n to_o confirm_v his_o baptism_n heaven_n a_o anabaptist_n in_o polonia_n attempt_v to_o cause_v the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v to_o prove_v his_o doctrine_n from_o heaven_n to_o be_v from_o heaven_n the_o day_n be_v prefix_v the_o place_n be_v appoint_v the_o rumour_n spread_v abroad_o all_o be_v desirous_a to_o see_v this_o miracle_n and_o first_o of_o all_o this_o arch-heretick_n enter_v into_o the_o water_n but_o in_o place_n of_o the_o holy-ghost_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n anon_o the_o devil_n appare_v with_o a_o horrible_a and_o fearful_a countenance_n offer_v himself_o to_o they_o all_o devil_n the_o anabaptist_n be_v beat_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o take_v the_o heretic_n by_o the_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n lifteth_z and_o carri_v he_o in_o the_o air_n let_v
of_o god_n psal_n 135._o v._n 4._o who_o only_o do_v wondrous_a work_n as_o only_o chief_a governor_n and_o ruler_n of_o nature_n therefore_o for_o this_o cause_n fit_o in_o a_o other_o place_n of_o the_o psal_n 92._o v._n 5._o they_o be_v call_v say_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n much_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o therefore_o if_o any_o true_a miracle_n be_v do_v in_o whatsoever_o place_n they_o come_v and_o be_v from_o the_o only_a virtue_n of_o god_n such_o as_o be_v the_o sudden_a cure_n of_o the_o lame_a the_o raise_n of_o the_o dead_a give_v sight_n to_o the_o blind_a etc._n etc._n which_o be_v do_v by_o only_o heavenly_a virtue_n even_o so_o in_o the_o roman-catholyk-church_n god_n work_v by_o his_o divyne_a power_n memory_n the_o miracle_n do_v in_o the_o catholycke_a church_n be_v register_v for_o a_o perpetual_a memory_n as_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n make_v mention_v what_o be_v do_v within_o this_o 16._o hundrith_n year_n the_o which_o cal._n deride_v call_v the_o catholyk_n by_o this_o by_o name_n mirabilier_n &_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o magician_n and_o charmer_n in_o old_a time_n who_o be_v make_v famous_a and_o renown_v with_o their_o wonder_n and_o sorcery_n to_o the_o uphold_v and_o nourish_v of_o their_o idolatry_n which_o lie_v true_o sound_v of_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n blaspheme_v cal●_n mock_n the_o catholic_n miracle_n and_o blaspheme_v that_o the_o work_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v attribute_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o pharisye_n ascribe_v of_o christ_n miracle_n luc._n 11._o moreover_o the_o roman-catholyckes_a produce_v nothing_o strange_a and_o contrary_a to_o god_n divyne_a honour_n holy_a scripture_n saint_n the_o miracle_n of_o the_o catholyck_n agree_v wi●h_a god_n divine_a honour_n by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n god_n do_v miracle_n because_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o reason_n when_o they_o say_v such_o a_o saint_n to_o have_v do_v miracle_n which_o i_o prove_v because_o albeit_o all_o these_o be_v do_v by_o god_n yet_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v the_o cause_n at_o who_o intercession_n and_o exaltation_n god_n will_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v miracle_n therefore_o see_v for_o the_o meryte_n of_o his_o saint_n god_n do_v these_o miracle_n and_o consequent_o fit_o and_o just_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v of_o that_o saint_n neither_o be_v this_o manner_n of_o speech_n strange_a in_o the_o scripture_n see_v the_o master_n of_o verity_n himself_o do_v say_v miracle_n without_o offence_n it_o be_v right_o say_v such_o a_o saint_n have_v wrought_v miracle_n joh_n 14._o v._o 12._o who_o believe_v in_o i_o the_o work_n which_o i_o do_v he_o shall_v do_v and_o besidd_v these_o he_o shall_v do_v great_a where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o his_o saint_n shall_v do_v those_o miracle_n which_o he_o do_v and_o make_v this_o addition_n et_fw-la maiora_fw-la horum_fw-la faciet_fw-la all_o the_o heretic_n be_v not_o abyle_v to_o gloss_n this_o text_n for_o it_o be_v give_v we_o evident_o to_o understand_v by_o these_o word_n that_o god_n do_v and_o work_v marvel_n in_o his_o saint_n prayer_n christ_n pro_fw-la doff_v that_o his_o faithful_a belevere_n shall_v do_v great_a miracle_n than_o he_o have_v do_v by_o authority_n and_o word_n and_o not_o by_o only_a prayer_n likewise_o in_o s._n matth._n 10._o v._n 8._o their_o mission_n say_v cure_v the_o sick_a raise_v the_o dead_a cleanse_v the_o lepres_n cast_v out_o devil_n and_o in_o ult._n marc._n it_o be_v again_o repeat_v in_o my_o name_n say_v he_o they_o shall_v cast_v out_o devil_n and_o speak_v with_o new_a tongue_n and_o take_v away_o serpent_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o by_o their_o prayer_n they_o shall_v do_v these_o thing_n but_o as_o the_o catholyckroman-church_n teach_v that_o by_o authority_n they_o shall_v do_v these_o thing_n therefore_o let_v these_o mocker_n and_o scorner_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o god_n do_v by_o his_o saint_n go_v hence_o and_o be_v ashamed_a and_o return_v confess_v as_o s._n aug._n say_v lib._n 22._o the_o civet_n dei_fw-la cap._n 8._o the_o martyr_n do_v miracle_n or_o else_o god_n by_o their_o prayer_n cooperate_n with_o they_o that_o faith_n may_v have_v his_o merit_n not_o that_o we_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v our_o god_n but_o to_o have_v with_o we_o one_o god_n other_o why_o miracle_n be_v do_v in_o one_o place_n and_o not_o in_o a_o other_o moreover_o of_o curiosity_n it_o may_v be_v demand_v wherefore_o in_o some_o place_n certaines_fw-fr miracle_n be_v do_v which_o be_v not_o do_v in_o other_o place_n i_o say_v if_o thou_o will_v not_o err_v be_v not_o curious_a to_o inquyre_v and_o search_v for_o the_o whole_a reason_n of_o the_o do_v &_o not_o do_v be_v refer_v and_o depend_v on_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n and_o hide_v counsel_n of_o god_n this_o question_n have_v be_v demand_v by_o the_o heretycke_v of_o eld_n time_n say_v question_n the_o old_a heretycke_n move_v this_o question_n wherefore_o do_v he_o miracle_n here_o and_o not_o there_o be_v not_o this_o saint_n as_o renown_v in_o holiness_n and_o as_o high_a inglory_n in_o heaven_n be_v not_o his_o intercession_n as_o acceptable_a to_o god_n as_o the_o other_o saint_n be_v to_o who_o s._n ang._n answer_n epist_n 139._o ad_fw-la cler_n &_o pop_v hip_n true_o god_n be_v every_o where_n say_v he_o and_o be_v contain_v or-included_n in_o no_o place_n who_o have_v make_v all_o and_o it_o behoove_v he_o to_o be_v worship_v of_o true_a worshipper_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n who_o hear_v in_o secret_a also_o in_o secret_a justifieth_n and_o crown_n nevertheless_o as_o concern_v these_o thing_n which_o be_v visible_o know_v to_o man_n who_o can_v search_v his_o counsel_n wherefore_o in_o this_o place_n miracle_n be_v do_v and_o in_o other_o place_n be_v not_o do_v this_o doctrine_n of_o s._n aug._n be_v easy_o prove_v by_o the_o testament_n john_n 5._o when_o at_o the_o move_n at_o the_o fish-poole-probatica_a in_o jerusalem_n place_n it_o be_v answer_v why_o god_n wrought_v miracle_n at_o the_o probatica_fw-la and_o no_o other_o place_n at_o a_o certain_a time_n and_o no_o other_o water_n be_v move_v and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o descend_v of_o a_o angel_n at_o a_o certain_a time_n so_o that_o neither_o before_o nor_o after_o the_o ordinary_a time_n that_o water_n be_v of_o any_o virtue_n for_o the_o cure_n of_o disease_n &_o infirmity_n either_o to_o the_o blind_a lame_a or_o wither_a etc._n etc._n but_o observe_v the_o instant_n time_n of_o the_o move_n of_o the_o water_n the_o sick_a and_o infirm_a person_n obtain_v the_o benefit_n of_o health_n even_o so_o to_o our_o purpose_n as_o s._n aug._n epist._n 137._o ad_fw-la cler_n &_o pop_v hip_n say_v take_v his_o warrant_n out_o of_o the_o apostle_n word_n 1._o cor_fw-la 12._o v._n 30._o all_o say_v he_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o heal_a neither_o all_o the_o gift_n of_o decern_v of_o spirit_n so_o neither_o all_o sasnct_n in_o all_o place_n have_v alike_o power_n and_o virtue_n be_v work_v miracle_n but_o as_o he_o will_v who_o devyde_v to_o every_o one_o his_o proper_a gift_n and_o therefore_o let_v we_o who_o be_v incapable_a of_o the_o secret_n of_o god_n through_o our_o humane_a weakness_n confess_v with_o the_o apostle_n and_o say_v rom._n 11._o v._n 33._o o_o the_o deepness_n of_o the_o riches_n both_o of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o unsearchable_a be_v his_o judgment_n saint_n miracle_n be_v not_o wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n neither_o by_o juggle_n or_o sorcerye_n but_o the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v dissolve_v by_o the_o miracle_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o his_o way_n past_o find_v out_o morover_n the_o miracle_n do_v in_o the_o roman-catholyck-church_n can_v be_v wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n either_o by_o juggle_a or_o witchcraft_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o sorcery_n because_o that_o even_o these_o work_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o magician_n and_o sorceress_n be_v undo_v and_o dissolve_v by_o the_o miracle_n of_o his_o saint_n at_o the_o sepulture_n or_o at_o the_o relic_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o likewise_o the_o devil_n be_v compel_v to_o confess_v many_o thing_n at_o the_o place_n and_o relic_n of_o his_o saint_n which_o they_o will_v not_o do_v if_o their_o power_n &_o virtue_n be_v not_o from_o god_n of_o such_o lick_n miracle_n s._n aug._n lib._n 22._o de_fw-la civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 8._o &_o epist_n 137._o ad_fw-la cler_n &_o pop_v hip_n &_o lib._n 8._o the_o civet_n dei_fw-la cap._n 26._o &_o libro_fw-la de_fw-la curae_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la gerenda_fw-la cap._n 17._o rehearse_v at_o length_n so_o that_o it_o
be_v out_o of_o a_o malignant_a spirit_n and_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o attribute_v the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n obiectio_fw-la in_o belzebub_n &_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o papist_n cast_v out_o devil_n &_o work_v miracle_n ergo_fw-la their_o miracle_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o not_o of_o god_n answer_n the_o proposition_n be_v false_a for_o if_o at_o the_o touch_v of_o the_o relycke_n of_o saint_n or_o in_o visit_v their_o sepultur_n chapell_n or_o to_o go_v pilgrimagie_n to_o their_o relyck_n and_o place_n or_o make_v prayer_n and_o invocation_n to_o they_o or_o application_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o honour_n and_o devotion_n towards_o they_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v and_o do_v in_o the_o catholycke_a church_n be_v to_o be_v attribute_v and_o ascrybed_n to_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o this_o proposition_n shall_v follow_v two_o great_a absurdity_n first_o that_o the_o devil_n with_o all_o power_n and_o force_n shall_v honour_v christ_n and_o his_o saint_n which_o be_v most_o contrary_a by_o the_o absurdity_n for_o then_o the_o devil_n shall_v destroy_v himself_o and_o his_o kingdom_n in_o promote_a the_o worshipe_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o his_o saint_n unto_o who_o he_o will_v give_v none_o nor_o acknowledge_v any_o due_a either_o to_o god_n or_o his_o saint_n second_o that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o saint_n shall_v serve_v for_o the_o work_n the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o divyne_a power_n and_o virtue_n of_o god_n shall_v serve_v to_o the_o obsequy_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o assertion_n by_o the_o absurdity_n be_v horrible_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n obiectio_fw-la when_o those_o and_o such_o lyck_a miracle_n fall_v out_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v attribute_v and_o ascrybed_n to_o come_v of_o the_o saint_n or_o of_o their_o meryte_n or_o by_o their_o intercession_n or_o praeyer_n but_o because_o it_o fortune_v so_o answer_n it_o be_v a_o open_a blasphemy_n either_o to_o speak_v or_o think_v to_o strain_v the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n to_o the_o course_n of_o the_o planet_n and_o to_o the_o hide_a influence_n of_o the_o heaven_n so_o that_o leo_n affirm_v epistol_n ad_fw-la astoricensem_fw-la who_o follow_v these_o there_o be_v no_o more_o place_n leave_v for_o he_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o say_v he_o who_o once_o have_v give_v themselves_o unto_o the_o constellation_n and_o persuade_v themselves_o after_o their_o own_o opinion_n depart_v and_o cut_v themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n unto_o this_o the_o counsel_n of_o braccar_n cap._n 1._o if_o any_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o man_n be_v astrict_v and_o govern_v of_o the_o fatal_a sign_n with_o the_o priscilianist_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v moreover_o miracle_n and_o prodigious_a thing_n oft_o fall_v out_o and_o be_v wrought_v when_o the_o relycke_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v of_o the_o people_n reverence_v and_o apply_v and_o when_o these_o saint_n be_v invocate_v by_o their_o earnest_a devotion_n and_o to_o bear_v witness_n of_o their_o reverence_n and_o honour_n to_o god_n saint_n they_o receive_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n even_o then_o especial_o miracle_n be_v do_v rather_o than_o any_o other_o time_n therefore_o see_v at_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n &_o the_o application_n of_o the_o relyke_n of_o the_o saint_n miracle_n be_v do_v they_o can_v be_v attribute_v to_o come_v of_o fortune_n or_o influence_n of_o the_o planet_n but_o of_o god_n the_o author_n of_o all_o goodness_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o this_o world_n for_o if_o the_o fishe-poole_n probatica_fw-la in_o jerusalem_n have_v virtue_n give_v to_o it_o to_o cure_v disease_n at_o a_o certain_a season_n of_o the_o year_n by_o the_o descend_v of_o a_o angel_n move_v the_o water_n which_o virtue_n and_o work_v of_o miracle_n in_o the_o probatica_fw-la of_o jerusalem_fw-la can_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o planet_n neither_o to_o fortune_n but_o to_o god_n and_o mediate_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o angel_n even_o so_o miracle_n do_v by_o the_o relyque_n of_o his_o saint_n or_o at_o their_o sepulture_n or_o altar_n can_v be_v attribute_v to_o fortune_n or_o any_o fatal_a star●e_n but_o to_o god_n and_o by_o the_o mediate_v ministry_n &_o intercession_n of_o his_o saint_n by_o who_o ministry_n god_n be_v honour_v qvaestio_n vii_o the_o pope_n be_v take_v of_o the_o reform_a for_o antichrist_n wherefore_o do_v the_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a papist_n obey_v the_o pope_n in_o ma●ters_n of_o religion_n see_v he_o be_v but_o a_o man_n antique_o antichrist_n luther_n ass_n art_n 27._o smalchald_n de_fw-fr pot_n pa●ae_fw-la caluin_n in_o 2_o thes_n cap._n 2._o illir_n de_fw-fr primate_n papae_fw-la answer_n upon_o this_o proposition_n i_o demand_v and_o ask_v wherefore_o do_v your_o mynisteres_n of_o your_o church_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n in_o whatsoever_o kingdom_n lay-man_n the_o protestant_n minyster_n be_v subject_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o lay-man_n or_o commonwealth_n they_o be_v in_o obey_v man_n and_o that_o lay-man_n of_o no_o ecclesiastical_a function_n neither_o of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v not_o this_o evident_a and_o know_v to_o all_o europe_n how_o the_o caluiniste_n of_o ingland_n give_v their_o homage_n &_o sure_a obedience_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n unto_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o institute_v her_o head_n of_o their_o reform_a synagogue_n lykwyse_o by_o her_o ordinance_n and_o statute_n we_o know_v and_o understand_v that_o these_o mynister_n be_v compel_v woman_n the_o minyster_n make_v queen_n elysabeth_n head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o swear_v obedience_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n contrary_a to_o their_o own_o conscience_n the_o scripture_n forbid_v woman_n in_o church_n matter_n the_o heretic_n wryte_n against_o the_o lawful_a temporal_a government_n of_o woman_n and_o bind_v to_o diverse_a ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n repugnant_a to_o their_o judgment_n and_o yet_o of_o necessity_n must_v rest_v content_v and_o also_o must_v subject_v themselves_o obedient_a to_o her_o statute_n what_o absurdity_n what_o baseness_n what_o indignity_n and_o what_o madness_n of_o mind_n to_o give_v to_o a_o woman_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n who_o the_o apostle_n 1._o timoth._n cap._n 2._o v._n n._n 12._o command_n to_o learn_v with_o silence_n with_o all_o subjection_n who_o be_v neither_o permit_v to_o teach_v neither_o to_o rule_v over_o a_o man_n how_o much_o more_o preposterous_a to_o rule_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o buchanan_n and_o knox_n write_v book_n against_o the_o regiment_n of_o a_o woman_n in_o which_o book_n they_o exclude_v his_o majesty_n mother_n of_o happy_a memory_n from_o the_o temporal_a government_n and_o as_o a_o thing_n most_o unworthy_a that_o a_o woman_n shall_v have_v any_o temporal_a government_n over_o man_n how_o much_o more_o indecent_a to_o rule_v over_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o heresy_n both_o in_o ingland_n and_o scotland_n so_o long_o as_o the_o two_o most_o catholyck_a maryes_fw-mi princess_n live_v the_o heretic_n oppose_v write_v against_o their_o government_n in_o temporal_a thing_n which_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n purpose_n heretic_n do_v allow_v the_o government_n of_o woman_n for_o their_o purpose_n and_o nature_n lawful_a for_o they_o notwithstanding_o when_v queen_n elizabeth_n obtain_v the_o crown_n than_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o she_o to_o rule_v not_o only_o in_o temporal_a thing_n but_o also_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o it_o be_v far_o less_o strange_a man_n it_o be_v not_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o reason_n to_o obey_v a_o man_n neither_o contrary_n to_o the_o tenor_n of_o reason_n neither_o too_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o a_o man_n then_o to_o a_o woman_n howbeit_o in_o lay-man_n this_o pre-eminence_n be_v never_o give_v of_o our_o lord_n neither_o be_v it_o ever_o permit_v to_o they_o to_o have_v the_o primacy_n of_o his_o church_n for_o if_o as_o the_o protestant_n say_n man_n christ_n never_o commit_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o his_o church_n to_o lay_v man_n why_o be_v the_o papist_n so_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a to_o obey_v a_o man_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n may_v it_o not_o be_v answer_v with_o the_o like_a humanity_n what_o be_v his_o majesty_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n a_o man_n or_o no_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o call_v he_o a_o prophet_n neither_o evangelist_n man_n the_o king_n of_o brittany_n be_v not_o a_o prophet_n nor_o a_o apostle_n nor_o a_o angel_n but_o a_o man_n neither_o patriarch_n nor_o angel_n yea_o a_o man_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o who_o all_o his_o good_a dutiful_a subject_n be_v
and_o compel_v man_n to_o idolatry_n and_o to_o worship_n himself_o and_o his_o image_n in_o all_o church_n and_o approve_a religion_n and_o where_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2._o thes_n 2._o that_o god_n shall_v send_v they_o not_o only_o the_o worker_n of_o error_n but_o the_o very_a fountain_n of_o error_n for_o as_o s._n ambros_n in_o luc_n c._n 21._o say_v that_o he_o shall_v dispute_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o his_o christ_n and_o he_o shall_v teach_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v god_n also_o he_o shall_v lead_v not_o only_a man_n to_o idolatrye_a bus_fw-la also_o shall_v persuade_v and_o compel_v all_o man_n to_o follow_v and_o obey_v he_o he_o shall_v also_o command_v himself_o to_o be_v worhhip_v and_o adore_v and_o his_o image_n to_o be_v place_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o jerusalem_n but_o in_o all_o other_o church_n also_o for_o antichrist_n know_v say_v the_o apostle_n abolish_v antichrist_n shall_v usurp_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o know_v christ_n shall_v come_v and_o beat_v he_o down_o he_o shall_v call_v himself_o god_n the_o pope_n can_v not_o be_v antichrist_n because_o he_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o his_o creed_n which_o antichrist_n shall_v abolish_v 2._o thess_n 2._o that_o our_o lord_n shall_v come_v to_o beat_v he_o down_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n will_v usurp_v his_o name_n unto_o himself_o to_o that_o end_n that_o his_o kingdom_n may_v seem_v true_a he_o will_v lead_v with_o he_o such_o as_o may_v perish_v together_o with_o he_o that_o he_o may_v sit_v in_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o seat_n of_o christ_n &_o affirm_v himself_o very_o god_n and_o therefore_o see_v antichrist_n be_v note_v proper_o to_o be_v a_o singular_a man_n and_o as_o yet_o not_o come_v who_o power_n &_o lyf_v be_v against_o christ_n that_o consequent_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v this_o antichrist_n who_o long_o since_o be_v come_v for_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v betwixt_o they_o may_v decern_v which_o of_o they_o be_v with_o or_o against_o god_n for_o this_o say_v antichrist_n shall_v oppose_v against_o christ_n and_o abolish_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o contrary_a w●●e_n the_o pope_n forbid_v no_o man_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n neither_o deny_v any_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n antichrist_n will_v do_v open_o against_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v call_v himself_o god_n but_o the_o pope_n do_v ne●er_o against_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n neither_o private_o nor_o public_o nor_o never_o do_v call_v himself_o god_n know_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o antichrist_n and_o by_o what_o note_n they_o may_v be_v know_v antichrist_n will_v not_o only_o be_v call_v god_n of_o o_o her_o man_n but_o will_v extol_v himself_o above_o god_n that_o be_v he_o will_v extol_v himself_o above_o the_o bless_a trinity_n but_o this_o extol_v no_o pope_n ever_o do_v think_v of_o much-lesseprof●sse_a it_o but_o profess_v and_o confess_v themselves_o to_o be_v servant_n of_o they_o who_o serve_v god_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n messiah_n antichrist_n thallbe_n receive_v of_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o messiah_n antichrist_n shall_v be_v receive_v special_o of_o the_o jew_n s._n hier._n ad_fw-la algas_n chrys_n hom_o 4_o in_o john_n but_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o receive_v the_o pope_n at_o any_o time_n and_o if_o they_o receive_v not_o christ_n far_o less_o the_o pope_n but_o shall_v receive_v antichrist_n as_o christ_n fortolde_v joh._n 5._o which_o place_n all_o the_o father_n expound_v of_o antichrist_n as_o ambros_n in_o 2._o thess_n 2._o cyril_n lib._n 3._o in_o john_n cap._n 6._o theod._n in_o 2._o thes_n 2._o antichrist_n shall_v come_v circumcise_v circumcision_n antichrist_n shall_v come_v circumcise_v of_o the_o circumcision_n and_o of_o the_o circumcision_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v have_v some_o confidence_n in_o believe_v he_o as_o s._n hier._n say_v sup_v he_o shall_v do_v all_o those_o thing_n not_o by_o his_o own_o power_n but_o by_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n for_o the_o jew_n sake_n and_o theod._n ut_fw-la sup_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v look_v for_o he_o and_o when_o he_o come_v they_o will_v believe_v in_o he_o but_o to_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o of_o the_o circumcision_n neither_o circumcise_v neither_o be_v he_o expect_v of_o the_o jew_n neither_o of_o they_o be_v believe_v ergo_fw-la neither_o be_v he_o antichrist_n moreover_o daniel_n cap._n 7._o after_o the_o description_n of_o the_o four_o empire_n it_o be_v say_v antichrist_n daniel_n prophesy_v of_o antichrist_n that_o the_o four_o beast_n which_o be_v the_o roman_a empire_n have_v ten_o horn_n and_o i_o consider_v the_o horn_n and_o behold_v a_o other_o littel_v horn_n spring_v out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o three_o of_o the_o first_o horn_n be_v pull_v up_o before_o his_o face_n and_o behold_v the_o eye_n as_o it_o be_v of_o a_o man_n be_v in_o his_o horn_n and_o a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n in_o which_o place_n s._n hier._n in_o dan_n cap._n 7._o let_v we_o say_v say_v he_o world_n before_o antichrist_n come_v ten_o king_n shall_v divide_v the_o roman_a empire_n and_o the_o eleven_o king_n shall_v humble_v three_o principal_a of_o the_o ten_o as_o a_o token_n of_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n before_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n the_o euangelly_n must_v be_v preach_v through_o the_o world_n that_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n have_v lest_o by_o tradition_n that_o in_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n when_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o roman_n must_v be_v destroy_v there_o shall_v be_v ten_o king_n who_o will_v divide_v the_o roman_a empire_n among_o themselves_o and_o there_o shall_v arise_v the_o eleven_o be_v a_o very_a little_a king_n who_o shall_v overcome_v three_o of_o these_o ten_o king_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o king_n of_o egypt_n africa_n and_o ethiopia_n this_o witness_n hippol_n hom._n de_fw-la antichrist_n and_o theod._n 2._o thess_n 2._o but_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o conquer_v to_o he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o egypt_n africa_n &_o ethiopergo_v he_o be_v not_o antichrist_n moreover_o before_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n the_o euange_o be_v to_o be_v preach_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o christ_n have_v say_v matt_n 24._o v._o 14._o this_o evange_o of_o the_o kingdom_n halbe_n preach_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o a_o testimony_n to_o all_o nation_n then_o shall_v come_v the_o consummation_n but_o this_o liberty_n of_o the_o euange_o be_v not_o fulfil_v as_o yet_o as_o a_o certain_a sign_n of_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n when_o he_o shall_v appear_v &_o see_v antichrist_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o come_v as_o of_o this_o sign_n may_v be_v gather_v ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n preach_n before_o antichrist_n come_v henoch_n and_o elias_n must_v come_v &_o when_o they_o come_v they_o will_v withstand_v he_o in_o their_o preach_n moreover_o the_o preach_n of_o henoch_n and_o elias_n be_v not_o yet_o fulfil_v who_o by_o their_o preach_n shall_v oppose_v themselves_o against_o antichrist_n for_o confirm_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolical_a faith_n as_o witness_v s._n joh._n apoc._n 11._o i_o shall_v give_v my_o two_o witness_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundrith_n and_o sixty_o day_n clothe_v in_o sa●hcloth_n as_o witness_v this_o place_n in_o their_o commentary_n primus_fw-la bed_n richard_n aret._n in_o apoc._n damasc_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 18._o greg._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 11._o d._n aug._n in_o gen._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr lib._n 9_o cap._n 6._o but_o elias_n and_o enoc●_n shall_v not_o come_v but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n and_o as_o yet_o antichrist_n be_v not_o come_v ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n hippol._n serm_n de_fw-fr antich_n &_o aug._n de_fw-fr civet_n lib._n 20._o cap._n 19_o chry._n in_o 2._o thes_n cap_n 2._o moreover_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v bear_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n as_o witness_v iren._n lib_n 5._o advers_a haeres_fw-la hippol_n serm_n de_fw-fr antichrist_n theod._n in_o 2_o thes_n 2_o greg._n mo●al_a lib_n 14_o in_o 106._o cap._n 11._o dan._n antichrist_n shall_v be_v bear_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan._n but_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o bear_v neither_o derive_v from_o such_o a_o tribe_n ergo_fw-la not_o antichrist_n morover_n antichrist_n come_v a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o foresaid_a author_n make_v mention_v but_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n the_o world_n shall_v have_v be_v finish_v long_o since_o ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n god_n the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a &_o he_o shall_v reign_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n moreover_o
lyk_fw-mi in_o all_o thing_n and_o equal_a in_o degree_n of_o dignity_n answer_n saint_n paul_n may_v do_v it_o just_o because_o they_o be_v brother_n in_o the_o office_n of_o apostleship_n &_o also_o for_o that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n with_o peter_n yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o no_o doctrine_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v then_o reprove_v as_o false_a but_o only_o his_o behaviour_n in_o a_o outward_a act_n as_o tertul._n lib._n de_fw-la praes_fw-la haeret._n witness_v for_o all_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o his_o conversation_n and_o not_o in_o doctrine_n for_o he_o converse_v with_o the_o gentile_n without_o respect_n of_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o law_n for_o he_o believe_v the_o law_n to_o bind_v no_o man_n yet_o at_o the_o come_n of_o certain_a jew_n he_o abstain_v from_o the_o gentile_n think_v thereby_o he_o shall_v do_v more_o good_a to_o the_o jew_n to_o abstain_v from_o some_o meat_n so_o that_o paul_n reprehend_v his_o dissemble_n in_o that_o the_o gentle_n also_o be_v compel_v to_o play_v the_o jew_n as_o s._n aug._n epist_n 19_o ad_fw-la hier._n note_n upon_o this_o place_n yet_o no_o less_o s._n paul_n in_o this_o fault_n be_v also_o culpable_a in_o tollerate_v the_o observance_n of_o the_o law_n in_o that_o he_o circumcise_a timothy_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n act._n 20._o now_o in_o that_o fashion_n of_o reproufe_v s._n paul_n believe_v that_o the_o time_n be_v proper_a that_o no_o man_n shall_v wink_v at_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n and_o to_o dissemble_v long_o for_o it_o be_v unprofitable_a for_o they_o believe_v the_o time_n be_v come_v to_o profess_v christ_n plain_o etc._n etc._n objection_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v eph._n 4._o he_o have_v constitute_v he_o head_n over_o all_o the_o church_n but_o if_o peter_n be_v head_n and_o consequent_o after_o he_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n there_o shall_v be_v two_o head_n of_o one_o body_n which_o be_v absurd_a ergo._n answer_n how_o impertinent_o do_v luther_n infer_v this_o argument_n against_o we_o to_o prove_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o monster_n with_o two_o head_n for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o peter_n be_v a_o lyk_fw-mi equal_a head_n with_o christ_n but_o under_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v head-vicar_n substitute_n in_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o a_o second_o head_n after_o christ_n that_o be_v a_o head_n of_o all_o other_o from_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o of_o all_o man_n grow_v in_o christ_n and_o so_o he_o be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o full_a body_n see_v he_o be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n be_v simpliciter_fw-la &_o absolute_a head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n yea_o of_o peter_n who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o this_o whole_a body_n notwithstanding_o more_o worthy_a than_o other_o as_o a_o viceroy_n be_v true_o head_n of_o that_o kingdom_n of_o which_o he_o bear_v charge_n nevertheless_a the_o king_n be_v superior_a and_o first_o head_n of_o all_o his_o kingdom_n even_o so_o christ_n and_o peter_n who_o be_v call_v a_o rock_n matt._n 16._o and_o a_o foundation_n 1_o cor._n 3._o vers_fw-la 11._o but_o not_o first_o for_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o first_o stone_n lay_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o peter_n be_v the_o second_o foundation_n and_o rock_n upon_o who_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n be_v found_v by_o christ_n objection_n if_o the_o pope_n succeed_v to_o peter_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v a_o apostle_n which_o be_v false_a answer_n the_o sequel_n be_v frivolous_a for_o more_o thing_n be_v require_v to_o the_o apostleshipe_n then_o to_o succeed_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o wit_n that_o immediate_o he_o be_v call_v of_o god_n moreover_o that_o he_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n his_o doctrine_n and_o send_v with_o authority_n to_o effectual_a the_o same_o and_o likewise_o to_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o write_v canonical_a scripture_n which_o thing_n the_o pope_n have_v not_o although_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o do_v obtain_v the_o apostolical_a power_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o which_o he_o have_v succeed_v to_o s._n peter_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v call_v the_o apostle_n seat_n because_o of_o the_o jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n which_o the_o apostl_n have_v and_o be_v give_v immediate_o by_o christ_n obiectio_fw-la the_o counsel_n may_v depose_v the_o pope_n therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n when_o the_o counsel_n may_v depose_v he_o answer_n the_o assumption_n be_v false_a absolute_o for_o a_o counsel_n with_o judicial_a authority_n can_v depose_v the_o pope_n because_o the_o first_o seat_n be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o pope_n have_v receive_v authority_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n immediate_o from_o christ_n so_o that_o the_o church_n can_v no_o way_n take_v away_o that_o authority_n put_v the_o case_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o manifest_a heretic_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v depose_v of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n who_o will_v not_o retain_v such_o a_o vicar_n who_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la declar_n himself_o a_o heretic_n &_o cut_v himself_o of_o so_o manifest_o from_o his_o body_n either_o by_o evidence_n of_o deed_n or_o by_o declaration_n of_o a_o general_a counsel_n qvaestio_n ix_o of_o the_o roman_a sea_n of_o s._n peter_n wherefore_o do_v the_o roman-papists_a boast_n so_o much_o of_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n see_v s._n peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n welenus_n illyr_n magdeburg_n sebast_n franc_n etc._n etc._n answer_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o peter_n be_v not_o only_o in_o rome_n and_o to_o have_v make_v his_o residence_n in_o it_o but_o to_o have_v be_v crucify_v there_o howsoever_o the_o impudence_n of_o heretic_n do_v prate_v against_o the_o tradition_n of_o all_o antiquity_n epistle_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o peter_n be_v in_o rome_n by_o his_o own_o epistle_n first_o it_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o his_o own_o first_o epistle_n cap._n 5._o v._n 13._o saying_n the_o church_n collect_v in_o babylon_n salute_v you_o that_o be_v to_o say_v rome_n which_o he_o call_v babylon_n because_o it_o be_v full_a of_o riches_n persecution_n superstition_n and_o idolatry_n with_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n reygn_v in_o it_o as_o witness_v eus_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 15._o likewise_o papias_n the_o disciple_n of_o s_o john_n say_v that_o peter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v from_o rome_n have_v remember_v mark_n who_o he_o call_v his_o son_n babylong_n rome_n be_v call_v babylong_n in_o which_o figurative_o he_o have_v nominate_v rome_n babylon_n when_o he_o say_v that_o babylon_n salute_v you_o likewise_o hie●_n de_fw-fr vir._n illust_n in_o marc._n say_v that_o peter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n under_o the_o name_n of_o babylon_n figurative_o signify_v rome_n moreover_o to_o have_v houlden_v and_o keep_v the_o episcopal_a chair_n at_o rome_n magus_n at_o rome_n he_o overcome_v simon_n magus_n and_o there_o to_o have_v overcome_v and_o be_v victor_n over_o simon_n magus_n this_o s._n aug._n declare_v lib._n 2._o cont_n lit_fw-fr petil_o cap._n 51._o reprehend_v the_o heretic_n in_o this_o manner_n say_v what_o have_v the_o chair_n of_o the_o roman-church_n do_v to_o thou_o rome_n s._n aug._n defend_v the_o seat_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o peter_n have_v sit_v and_o in_o which_o at_o this_o day_n anastasius_n do_v si●t_o moreover_o speak_v of_o simon_n magus_n lib._n de_fw-fr haer._n ad_fw-la quoduult_n har._n 1._o say_v that_o he_o heretic_n give_v the_o image_n both_o of_o himself_o rome_n simon_n magus_n superstuious_a deal_n in_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o whorish_a city_n to_o his_o disciple_n to_o be_v worship_v the_o which_o at_o rome_n he_o have_v set_v up_o by_o public_a authority_n as_o the_o image_n of_o the_o heathen_a god_n in_o the_o which_o city_n the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n overthrow_v he_o by_o the_o true_a virtue_n of_o god_n omnipotent_a thus_o he_o for_o all_o the_o history_n god_n his_o overthrow_n at_o room_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o holy_a writer_n with_o general_a tradition_n in_o all_o age_n have_v testify_v that_o s._n peter_n come_v to_o rome_n as_o say_v egisip_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 2._o ire●_n lib_n 3._o cap._n 3._o but_o and_o euseb_n the_o professor_n of_o ●●●ditious_a say_v in_o ch●on_n &_o eccl._n hist._n lib._n 2._o cap_n 15_o that_o in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o claudius_n the_o emperor_n peter_n the_o apostle_n when_o he_o have_v first_o found_v the_o church_n at_o antioch_n he_o go_v to_o rome_n year_n peter_n preach_v at_o rome_n xxv_o year_n where_o preach_v the_o euange_o twenty-fyve-yeare_n he_o remain_v bishop_n of_o that_o same_o town_n and_o s._n
strait_o that_o that_o which_o be_v once_o judge_v in_o a_o synod_n and_o right_o dispose_v let_v no_o man_n call_v it_o again_o in_o question_n seek_v thereby_o occasion_n of_o tumult_n or_o of_o falsehood_n for_o it_o be_v wicked_a and_o sacrilegious_a after_o the_o judgement_n of_o so_o many_o priest_n to_o leave_v any_o thing_n to_o his_o own_o opinion_n to_o be_v discuss_v faith_n emperor_n nor_o king_n nor_o no_o lay-man_n be_v admit_v in_o general_a counsel_n to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n morover_n neither_o be_v emperor_n nor_o any_o lay-man_n howsoever_o learned_a in_o holy_a scripture_n admit_v in_o a_o general_a counsel_n to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n or_o at_o any_o time_n have_v be_v admit_v as_o the_o bishop_n be_v who_o assist_v the_o pope_n not_o only_o as_o counsellor_n but_o also_o as_o judge_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o say_v so_o the_o holy_a synod_n have_v decree_v for_o what_o be_v more_o contrary_a to_o reason_n then_o where_o be_v treat_v of_o salvation_n &_o damnation_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o in_o defyne_a of_o the_o wholesome_a doctrine_n from_o error_n judge_n bishop_n be_v both_o counsellor_n &_o judge_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o reason_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n &_o damnation_n lay-man_n shall_v be_v judge_n to_o commit_v the_o judgement_n of_o these_o thing_n to_o lay-man_n which_o appertain_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o pastor_n according_a to_o hier._n say_v cap._n 3._o i_o shall_v give_v you_o pastor_n according_a to_o my_o hart_n and_o they_o shall_v feed_v you_o with_o science_n and_o doctrine_n and_o s._n paul_n say_v eph._n 4._o he_o have_v give_v some_o to_o be_v pastor_n and_o doctores_fw-la but_o the_o emperor_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n use_v to_o follow_v and_o hear_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n and_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o not_o to_o argue_v or_o to_o give_v verdict_n or_o pronunce_v sentence_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n whereupon_o s._n august_n apud_fw-la possid_v in_o vita_fw-la eius_fw-la cap._n 18._o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n innocent_a and_o zozimus_n accurse_v the_o pelagian_n &_o cut_v they_o of_o from_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o write_v letter_n to_o the_o african_a church_n of_o the_o orient_a and_o occident_n signify_v they_o to_o be_v accurse_v and_o to_o be_v eschew_v of_o all_o catholic_n also_o the_o most_o godly_a emperor_n honorius_n hear_v pelagius_n and_o his_o fellower_n accurse_v decree_v they_o also_o by_o his_o own_o law_n damn_v &_o adjudge_v for_o heretic_n decree_n emperor_n and_o king_n have_v make_v concurrence_n to_o the_o counsel_n for_o obedience_n &_o have_v make_v law_n for_o obedience_n to_o be_v do_v for_o receive_v their_o decree_n likewise_o s._n august_n epist_n 166._o make_v mention_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a to_o have_v the_o lyk_fw-mi strength_n against_o heretic_n so_o that_o these_o godly_a emperor_n never_o meddle_v themselves_o to_o be_v examiner_n of_o the_o counsel_n farreles_a judge_n but_o what_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o counsel_n we_o read_v they_o to_o have_v make_v law_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o counsel_n &_o pope_n verdict_n and_o sentence_n and_o ever_o have_v show_v themselves_o as_o nurse_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n render_v all_o reverence_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n authority_n as_o witness_v ruff._n lih_o 10._o eccl._n hist_o cap._n 2._o &_o valentin_n emper._n ad_fw-la synod_n chalc._n &_o martianus_n act._n 3._o council_n chalced_a s._n ambros_n epist_n 32._o s._n aug._n hom_n de_fw-fr paschal_n &_o in_o ps_n count_v part_n donat_fw-la &_o epist_n 48._o &_o philo._n libro_fw-la de_fw-la victimis_fw-la athanasius_n in_o epistol_n ad_fw-la solit._n vitam_fw-la agente_fw-la &_o epistol_n idem_fw-la &_o su●idas_n in_o vita_fw-la leontij_fw-la theodor._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 17.18_o &_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o but_o contrariwise_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o all_o heretic_n ignominy_n the_o germans_n contemn_v the_o counsel_n of_o trent_n to_o their_o great_a ignominy_n to_o contemn_v all_o general_a counsel_n of_o the_o church_n as_o do_v most_o filthy_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n the_o last_o of_o febu_n 1537._o with_o ignominy_n to_o their_o nation_n for_o dispyse_v the_o counsel_n set_v and_o appoint_v by_o the_o pope_n who_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v nor_o yet_o the_o byshope_n with_o he_o but_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o more_o plain_o they_o may_v say_v it_o do_v appertain_v also_o to_o barber_n tailor_n cobbler_n baker_n brewer_n wolspynners_n butcher_n cook_n apotechary_n and_o every_o mechanical_a and_o all_o trashkind_a of_o people_n to_o who_o god_n never_o give_v authority_n to_o judge_v neither_o be_v admit_v to_o come_v in_o the_o place_n of_o judgement_n to_o hear_v what_o be_v judge_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o to_o prelate_n be_v commit_v the_o authority_n of_o feed_v as_o s._n pet._n say_v 1._o pet._n cap._n 5._o v._n 2._o feed_v the_o stock_n of_o god_n which_o be_v among_o you_o obey_v no_o emperor_n may_v call_v a_o general_a counsel_n lawful_o neither_o do_v his_o power_n extend_v in_o all_o part_n to_o be_v obey_v and_o depend_v upon_o you_o thus_o he_o moreover_o neither_o emperor_n of_o themselves_o may_v command_v a_o counsel_n the_o reason_n be_v evident_a because_o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o the_o emperor_n feed_v my_o sheep_n but_o only_o to_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n neither_o be_v the_o emperor_n or_o king_n head_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o have_v they_o commandment_n over_o all_o byshope_n see_v many_o bishop_n remain_v out_o of_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o commandment_n but_o a_o general_a counsel_n shall_v be_v command_v of_o he_o who_o may_v command_v that_o they_o assemble_v otherwise_o the_o indiction_n and_o command_n shall_v be_v of_o no_o value_n or_o effect_n and_o see_v the_o emperor_n or_o king_n be_v only_o a_o general_a defender_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o for_o that_o cause_n that_o jurisdiction_n to_o command_v a_o counsel_n be_v never_o lawful_a neither_o at_o any_o time_n have_v be_v institute_v of_o the_o emperor_n by_o authority_n of_o themselves_o and_o albeit_o some_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la have_v indict_v counsel_n notwithstanding_o no_o otherways_o rome_n whatsoever_o emperor_n have_v do_v be_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n they_o with_o the_o authority_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n neither_o do_v the_o first_o bishop_n in_o those_o time_n indicte_n any_o counsel_n without_o the_o help_n of_o the_o emperor_n so_o that_o ever_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v join_v with_o the_o emperor_n as_o for_o example_n that_o great_a counsel_n of_o nyce_n be_v not_o only_o gather_v of_o constantyne_n emperor_n but_o also_o of_o silvester_n pope_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o sixth_o synod_n act._n 8._o to_o who_o agree_v ruff._n lib._n 10._o hist._n cap._n 1._o say_v constantine_n to_o have_v gather_v that_o great_a counsel_n by_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o of_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o commandment_n moreover_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v very_o necessary_a for_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v gather_v at_o one_o counsel_n first_o respect_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v necessary_a for_o diverse_a respect_n that_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n may_v by_o their_o authority_n be_v defend_v from_o pagans_n in_o the_o way_n second_o that_o they_o may_v be_v transport_v with_o public_a charge_n for_o than_o they_o be_v poor_a and_o may_v not_o bear_v so_o great_a charge_n of_o themselves_o three_o because_o in_o that_o time_n the_o old_a law_n of_o the_o emperor_n do_v rule_v and_o be_v in_o effect_n observe_v which_o inhibit_v all_o great_a meeting_n and_o covention_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o fear_v of_o sedition_n and_o conjuration_n leg_n convent_n cod_n de_fw-fr epist_n cop_z presb_n which_o law_n have_v now_o cease_v objection_n it_o be_v say_v john_n 5._o search_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o the_o certain_a way_n to_o compose_v controversy_n of_o religion_n be_v by_o the_o search_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o by_o decition_n and_o sentence_n of_o counsel_n answer_n the_o scripture_n keep_v the_o place_n of_o a_o witness_n and_o not_o of_o a_o judge_n for_o christ_n have_v not_o say_v search_v the_o scripture_n because_o they_o bear_v judgement_n of_o i_o but_o he_o say_v search_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o indicative_a word_n because_o they_o bear_v witness_n of_o i_o for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o office_n of_o a_o witness_n to_o give_v sentence_n but_o only_o to_o give_v testimony_n but_o it_o be_v the_o judge_n part_n to_o hear_v search_n and_o examine_v the_o witness_n
the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 1._o i_o beseech_v you_o brother_n by_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o you_o say_v all_o one_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n among_o you_o but_o be_v you_o perfect_a in_o one_o sense_n and_o in_o the_o same_o knowledge_n again_o 1._o cor._n 14._o god_n be_v not_o a_o god_n of_o dissension_n but_o of_o peace_n again_o rome_n 15._o now_o the_o god_n of_o patience_n and_o consolation_n give_v you_o to_o think_v the_o same_o thing_n one_o with_o another_o according_a to_o jesus_n christ_n that_o with_o one_o mind_n and_o one_o mouth_n you_o may_v honour_v god_n again_o rom._n 12._o be_v not_o high_o mind_v and_o be_v not_o wise_a in_o yourselves_o again_o phil._n 2._o if_o there_o be_v any_o consolation_n in_o christ_n if_o any_o comfort_n of_o love_n if_o any_o fellowship_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o any_o compassion_n and_o mercy_n fulfil_v my_o joy_n that_o you_o be_v like_o mind_a have_v the_o same_o love_n &_o be_v of_o one_o unity_n and_o of_o one_o judgement_n therefore_o to_o descrybe_n this_o one_o with_o her_o unity_n she_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o spouse_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n his_o only_a dove_n and_o perfect_a one_o his_o elect_a and_o sister_n new_a jerusalem_n the_o arck_n of_o noe._n as_o witness_v these_o follow_v eph._n 4._o &_o 5.1_o cor._n 11._o rom._n 12._o cant._n 6_o &_o 4._o apoc._n 21._o gen._n 8._o psalm_n 79._o cant_n 2._o esa_n 5._o jer._n 2_o &_o 12._o matth._n 20._o marc._n 12._o apoc._n 14._o luc._n 5._o matth._n 13._o therefore_o as_o the_o church_n be_v one_o so_o have_v she_o unity_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o first_o she_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n truth_n the_o cause_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n ●s_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o teacher_n of_o the_o truth_n a_o visible_a head_n to_o f●llow_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o definition_n of_o ●he_n church_n for_o conserve_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o god_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n and_o always_o teach_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v but_o one._n second_o the_o high_a pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o under_o christ_n govern_v this_o church_n in_o a_o visible_a manner_n be_v a_o other_o cause_n because_o while_o all_o obey_v one_o who_o can_v swerve_v from_o the_o truth_n because_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o who_o christ_n have_v pray_v matth._n 16_o luc_n 22._o for_o faith_n and_o truth_n must_v agree_v in_o one_o because_o faith_n &_o truth_n be_v but_o one_o three_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o square_a rule_n by_o which_o the_o truth_n and_o religion_n be_v try_v and_o scripture_n be_v expound_v which_o rule_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o unity_n love_n &_o peace_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n no_o such_o like_a thing_n can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o protestants_n where_o be_v this_o one_o church_n among_o they_o where_o be_v unity_n which_o be_v a_o virtue_n proceed_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o teach_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o unity_n where_o be_v the_o head_n unto_o who_o all_o concurre_v where_o be_v the_o definition_n for_o the_o keep_n of_o unity_n be_v these_o effect_n among_o the_o sectary_n moreover_o in_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n number_n of_o sacrament_n exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o use_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n such_o jar_n emulation_n and_o discord_n be_v among_o themselves_o that_o nicol._n gall_n superintendent_n in_o rhensburgein_o thesibus_fw-la &_o hypoth_v say_v our_o contention_n be_v not_o in_o small_a matter_n neither_o of_o trifle_n irreconciliable_a how_o variable_a be_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o irreconciliable_a but_o in_o the_o high_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o justification_n and_o good_a work_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o use_v of_o they_o of_o divyne_a worshipe_n and_o ceremony_n which_o by_o no_o mean_n can_v be_v appease_v hide_v or_o dissemble_v for_o they_o be_v plain_a contradiction_n which_o can_v not_o be_v accord_v thus_o he_o so_o that_o by_o their_o own_o professor_n they_o be_v convince_v of_o discord_n and_o sect_n likewise_o sturnius_fw-la de_fw-la rat_n contrad_a inaeundae_fw-la pag._n 24._o do_v verisie_n this_o dissension_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o lutheran_n in_o their_o book_n publish_v do_v condemn_v the_o church_n of_o ingland_n france_n scotland_n szuitzerland_n as_o heretic_n likewise_o in_o his_o epitome_n colloq_fw-la malbrug_n a_o 1564._o pag._n 82._o discover_v the_o zwinglians_n who_o claim_n unity_n and_o fraternal_a peace_n with_o the_o lutheran_n say_v that_o the_o zwinglians_n write_v that_o they_o account_v themselves_o brother_n with_o we_o it_o be_v a_o impudent_a lie_n and_o vain_o forge_v by_o they_o that_o we_o can_v sufficient_o admire_v their_o impudence_n for_o we_o account_v they_o heretic_n &_o not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n farrelesse_a to_o repute_v they_o our_o brother_n who_o we_o find_v transport_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o falsehood_n and_o to_o be_v contumelious_a to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n again_o schluss_n in_o theol._n cal._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6._o say_v that_o the_o caluiniste_n will_v account_v we_o lutheran_n as_o their_o brother_n who_o notwithstanding_o they_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n this_o discord_n jezler_n zuinglio_n caluinist_n lib._n de_fw-fr diuturnit_fw-la bell●_n euch_fw-ge pag._n 25._o &_o 80._o discovere_n more_o at_o length_n say_v there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o chide_v write_v accuse_v dispute_v condemn_v and_o excommunicate_v one_o another_o betwixt_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluiniste_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n say_v schluss_n lib._n 2._o art_n 15._o theol._n call_v that_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a no_o definition_n either_o of_o general_a or_o particular_a counsel_n be_v expect_v for_o unity_n in_o religion_n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o they_o to_o agree_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n except_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n hasten_v and_o close_o up_o this_o variance_n likewise_o carlil_n in_o his_o book_n how_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n affirm_v their_o unity_n be_v to_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n from_o their_o right_a sense_n and_o to_o show_v themselves_o to_o love_v darkness_n more_o than_o the_o light_n whereupon_o cal._n in_o praf_n non_fw-la test_n gall_n 1567._o i_o confess_v say_v he_o that_o satan_n have_v gain_v more_o by_o these_o new_a gospeler_n than_o be_v in_o popery_n by_o keep_v the_o word_n from_o the_o people_n be_v not_o this_o the_o unity_n of_o these_o professor_n of_o disco●d_n schism_n and_o variable_a opinion_n as_o greg._n maior_fw-la in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr conf_fw-fr dogm_n the_o papist_n say_v he_o do_v object_n the_o scandal_n and_o discord_n which_o be_v among_o we_o i_o confess_v they_o be_v great_a then_o can_v be_v deplore_v with_o any_o tear_n i_o confess_v the_o weak_a mind_n of_o many_o to_o be_v so_o trouble_v thereby_o that_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o doubt_v where_o the_o truth_n be_v or_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n of_o god_n or_o no._n likewise_o chytreus_n in_o thema_fw-la deprau_v aug._n conf_n the_o evangelicall_a doctor_n be_v more_o barbarous_a and_o lyk_fw-mi cruel_a beast_n contend_v among_o themselves_o then_o barbarous_a soldier_n likewise_o nil_fw-la selueccerus_n say_v that_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v loathsome_a to_o the_o world_n their_o chayr_n pulpite_n and_o seat_n begin_v to_o displease_v all_o man_n in_o which_o no_o other_o doctrine_n be_v hear_v then_o venomous_a debate_n contention_n and_o variety_n of_o opinion_n for_o as_o say_v vigand_n lib._n the_o errorib_n maior_fw-la it_o be_v neither_o will_v nor_o flax_n that_o they_o contend_v about_o but_o the_o very_a capital_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n &_o until_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o shall_v never_o better_a agree_v therefore_o for_o conclusion_n no_o unity_n in_o heresy_n but_o this_o unity_n be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n because_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n be_v of_o one_o hart_n reason_n in_o conclusion_n no_o unity_n be_v in_o heresy_n as_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v one_o so_o be_v unity_n and_o love_n in_o she_o one_o be_v the_o church_n and_o in_o unity_n for_o diverse_a reason_n and_o one_o mind_n therefore_o our_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v that_o one_o and_o keep_v unity_n &_o that_o same_o with_o the_o church_n which_o be_v from_o the_o primitive_a time_n which_o may_v easy_o appear_v by_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o circumstance_n of_o all_o former_a antiquity_n which_o also_o remain_v one_o and_o in_o keep_v unity_n in_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o the_o self_n visible_a head_n not_o in_o number_n but_o by_o successive_a succession_n and_o moreover_o it_o be_v
nothing_o they_o be_v of_o no_o force_n but_o only_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n redeem_v &_o promerit_n for_o we_o and_o that_o his_o preach_n be_v less_o a_o vaylable_a than_o other_o man_n who_o by_o preach_v do_v cancel_v the_o multitude_n of_o sin_n likewise_o his_o fast_a and_o prayer_n werelesse_a worth_n than_o the_o ninivites_fw-la who_o thereby_o eschew_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n &_o likewise_o less_o worth_a they_o moses_n who_o purchase_v to_o the_o israelit_n god_n favour_v more_o over_o his_o voluntary_a poverty_n his_o innocent_a life_n his_o circumcision_n his_o work_n of_o mercy_n be_v of_o no_o value_n and_o benefit_n whereas_o in_o any_o other_o all_z and_o every_o one_o of_o these_o have_v be_v a_o sufficient_a price_n for_o heaven_n which_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v of_o infinite_a price_n in_o christ_n and_o consequent_o of_o sufficiency_n all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o redeem_v a_o thousand_o world_n unless_o christ_n be_v deny_v to_o be_v of_o infinite_a dignity_n wherefore_o all_o divyne_n believe_v that_o christ_n death_n be_v a_o demonstration_n of_o excess_n of_o love_n because_o he_o so_o love_v he_o that_o of_o the_o end_n and_o consummation_n of_o all_o love_n he_o leave_v they_o abundant_a proof_n and_o that_o his_o merit_n be_v sufficient_a to_o redeem_v a_o thousand_o world_n if_o christ_n will_v have_v be_v content_v with_o that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a omit_v what_o be_v abundant_a d._n thom._n 3._o part_n de_fw-la christ_n mer_n be_v &_o 1.2_o quaest_a 114._o rota_fw-la whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o neither_o his_o death_n be_v sufficient_a satisfaction_n of_o sin_n and_o consequent_o neither_o christ_n life_n nor_o death_n be_v allow_v to_o be_v meritorious_a and_o sufficient_a to_o redeem_v us._n morover_n a_o great_a absurdity_n follow_v because_o they_o evacuate_v christ_n death_n who_o make_v christ_n unuoluntary_a to_o have_v suffer_v for_o we_o for_o as_o every_o sin_n be_v voluntary_a so_o be_v every_o merit_n but_o calu._n in_o cap._n 26._o mat._n v._o 39_o say_v that_o he_o refuse_v to_o discharge_v the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n &_o repute_a christ_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o passion_n to_o have_v have_v no_o sufficiency_n above_o other_o man_n and_o that_o in_o his_o prayer_n do_v not_o appear_v a_o temperate_a moderation_n et_fw-fr caluin_n lib_n 2._o inst_z cap._n 13._o §_o 10_o 11.12_o say_v that_o he_o be_v torment_v with_o doutfulnes_n of_o his_o conscience_n and_o that_o he_o be_v astonish_v with_o the_o horror_n of_o god_n malediction_n and_o torment_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o bottonles_a pit_n of_o horrible_a destruction_n and_o he_o burst_v out_o into_o a_o voice_n &_o cry_v of_o desperation_n and_o be_v overwhelm_v in_o desperation_n he_o cease_v to_o pray_v long_o to_o god_n which_o doctrine_n also_o confirm_v beza_n in_o cap._n 27._o matth._n &_o marlor_n in_o psal_n 22._o morover_n they_o evacuate_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n who_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v be_v our_o deliverer_n only_o and_o not_o our_o redeemer_n he●lius_n apud_fw-la cle●itium_fw-la in_o victoria_fw-la part_n 2._o and_o likewise_o also_o they_o who_o reject_v the_o name_n of_o merit_n and_o with_o caluin_n affirm_v lib._n 2._o inst_z c._n 17._o §_o 1_o if_o any_o will_v say_v he_o oppose_v christ_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n there_o will_v no_o place_n remain_v to_o any_o merit_n because_o there_o be_v not_o in_o man_n that_o dignity_n to_o deserve_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n and_o so_o for_o conclusion_n of_o caluins_n assertion_n the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v naught_o &_o christ_n be_v only_o affirm_v to_o be_v but_o man_n &_o not_o god_n for_o in_o express_a term_n all_o heretic_n say_v christ_n blood_n death_n and_o passion_n to_o have_v nothing_o avayl_v to_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n and_o that_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o work_n deserve_v not_o heaven_n or_o at_o the_o least_o to_o say_v that_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n be_v profitable_a only_o for_o the_o predestinat_a and_o that_o no_o other_o have_v any_o benefit_n thereby_o calu._n count_v heshus_n pag._n 39_o beza_n in_o colloq_fw-la mompel_v 1._o pag._n 522._o bucc_fw-la sup_v joh._n pag._n 34._o musc_n in_o loc_n theol._n fol._n 363.367_o zanch._n in_o miscellam_n pag._n 3._o 200._o 206._o aret._n apud_fw-la schlus_n lib._n 1._o art_n 6.25.26_o &_o lib._n 2._o fol._n 42._o theol._n calu._n whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o redeemer_n of_o all_o or_o mediator_n for_o all_o offence_n and_o offender_n neither_o intend_v their_o salvation_n hell_n against_o the_o 6._o article_n how_o the_o protestant_n deny_v christ_n to_o have_v descend_v into_o hell_n moreover_o as_o concern_v that_o article_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n the_o three_o day_n he_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v mighty_o impugn_a of_o the_o protestant_n for_o carlil_n in_o his_o book_n that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n say_v it_o be_v a_o pernicious_a heresy_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o beza_n in_o apol._n 2._o ad_fw-la zantes_n pag._n 385._o these_o word_n say_v he_o enter_v into_o the_o creed_n by_o inaduertisement_n or_o otherways_o by_o gloss_v these_o word_n that_o his_o descend_v be_v only_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o pang_n of_o death_n on_o the_o cross_n where_o not_o only_o his_o humanity_n but_o also_o his_o divinity_n endure_v pain_n yea_o and_o death_n luth._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 276._o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v christ_n to_o be_v his_o saviour_n if_o only_o his_o humanity_n have_v suffer_v yea_o caluin_n back_n luther_n in_o cataeche_n cap._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la this_o be_v christ_n descension_n to_o hell_n that_o he_o suffer_v that_o death_n which_o god_n in_o his_o anger_n inflict_v on_o the_o wicked_a and_o again_o lib._n 2._o inst_z cap._n 16._o §_o 10_o &_o cap._n 26.27_o matth._n that_o he_o suffer_v all_o the_o pain_n in_o his_o soul_n which_o by_o god_n in_o revendgment_n be_v exact_v of_o the_o damn_v thus_o he_o in_o which_o doctrine_n be_v contain_v beside_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o death_n of_o his_o soul_n ghost_n calu._n blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o his_o divinity_n &_o that_o after_o he_o have_v endure_v such_o death_n to_o have_v suffer_v all_o punishment_n of_o the_o damn_a morover_n they_o impugn_v this_o article_n by_o make_v his_o descension_n nothing_o else_o heretic_n christ_n descension_n to_o hell_n how_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o heretic_n but_o christ_n burial_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n as_o zue_v oecol_n buc._n calu._n inst_z trem_fw-la marel_n beza_n do_v affirm_v and_o because_o the_o common_a name_n for_o hell_n in_o hebrew_n do_v signify_v sometime_o a_o grave_n or_o ditch_n and_o yetnotwithstanding_n caluin_n confess_v that_o the_o say_a name_n more_o usual_o &_o proper_o do_v signify_v hell_n the_o place_n and_o state_n of_o the_o damn_a also_o many_o of_o the_o protestant_a professor_n oppose_v beza_n show_v by_o manifold_a passage_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n scheol_n &_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o latin_a infernus_fw-la do_v signify_v a_o infernal_a proper_a place_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o yet_o nevertheless_o some_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o deny_v christ_n descension_n to_o heel_n thereby_o to_o maintain_v their_o former_a blasphemy_n descension_n they_o intend_v to_o deny_v limbo_n and_o purgatory_n by_o deny_v christ_n descension_n of_o his_o suffering_n the_o pain_n of_o the_o damn_a on_o the_o cross_n and_o to_o evacuate_v the_o delyverance_n of_o the_o father_n out_o of_o the_o limbo_n and_o purgatory_n and_o therefore_o to_o remove_v these_o block_n out_o of_o way_n beza_n in_o cap._n 2._o act._n he_o translate_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o his_o fellow_n compagnions_n contrary_a to_o the_o greek_a &_o latin_a interpreter_n and_o father_n whereupon_o d._n humphrey_n lib._n 2._o derat_fw-la interpret_v pag_n 219_o 220._o say_v that_o the_o foresaid_a hebru_n word_n shall_v not_o be_v translate_v grave_n but_o hell_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v observe_v for_o this_o have_v be_v beza_n intention_n to_o translate_v grave_n for_o hell_n and_o christ_n soul_n for_o body_n to_o deny_v hell_n protestant_n hell_n be_v take_v metaphorical_o of_o the_o protestant_n and_o all_o infernal_a torment_n and_o that_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o hell_n metaphorical_o albeit_o forget_v himself_o prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o father_n the_o contrary_a say_n in_o cap._n 16._o luc._n that_o christ_n descend_v into_o the_o earth_n into_o the_o receptacle_n of_o those_o who_o be_v there_o long_o retain_v moreover_o bullinger_n in_o 1._o pet._n cap._n 4._o impugn_v this_o article_n that_o christ_n descend_v no_o otherways_o into_o hell_n then_o as_o he_o daily_o
descend_v to_o we_o to_o wit_n only_o by_o spirit_n and_o virtue_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o none_o surmise_v his_o body_n or_o soul_n to_o have_v descend_v to_o which_o agree_v brentius_n that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o but_o a_o figurative_a imaginative_a and_o spiritual_a hell_n without_o other_o torment_n then_o metaphorical_a this_o practice_n of_o heresy_n s._n ang._n lib._n 3_o de_fw-fr doct_n christ_n cap._n 10._o fortould_a say_v when_o the_o mind_n of_o any_o be_v preoccupate_v by_o error_n all_o that_o scripture_n have_v to_o the_o contrary_a they_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v speak_v but_o figurative_o as_o for_o example_n they_o begin_v at_o the_o sacrament_n to_o make_v they_o but_o figure_n and_o follow_v next_o to_o affirm_v all_o promise_n by_o christ_n effect_n all_o christ_n suffering_n &_o action_n shall_v be_v but_o figurative_n &_o nothing_o in_o effect_n make_v for_o good_a work_n to_o be_v but_o hyperbolical_a diverse_a mystery_n of_o his_o life_n to_o be_v ineffectual_a all_o his_o passion_n suffer_v to_o be_v but_o figurative_a and_o histrionical_a and_o heaven_n and_o hell_n to_o be_v but_o only_o tropical_a &_o fantastical_a so_o have_v say_v of_o they_o josias_n simler_n in_o vita_fw-la bull_v fol._n 3._o &_o alan_n cop_z dial_n 5._o cap._n 18._o morover_n this_o article_n be_v impugn_a for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o ghrist_n resurrection_n say_v with_o calu._n in_o sva_fw-la harm_n in_o cap._n 24._o luc._n v._n 38._o &_o beza_n 1_o cor._n cap._n 15._o v._n 23._o that_o christ_n want_v some_o perfection_n of_o a_o glorious_a resurrection_n and_o as_o yet_o never_o to_o have_v rise_v but_o yet_o to_o remain_v dead_a whereupon_o great_a exception_n have_v be_v make_v against_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n among_o the_o new_a professores_fw-la who_o desire_v to_o abolish_v it_o or_o observe_v it_o according_a to_o the_o jew_n ceremony_n luth._o de_fw-la conc_fw-fr bal._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 25._o the_o scrip_n morover_n this_o article_n be_v impugn_a by_o zuing._n tom_n 2._o resp_n ad_fw-la luth._o librum_fw-la de_fw-fr sacr._n fol._n 465._o who_o deny_v christ_n to_o have_v rise_v by_o his_o own_o power_n but_o ridiculous_o mock_v luther_n say_v that_o the_o gross_a praetor_n luther_n apparel_v in_o his_o red_a hose_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o christ_n go_v out_o of_o his_o sepulchre_n may_v also_o have_v issue_v for_o christ_n after_o his_o death_n issue_v out_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o his_o own_o force_n and_o power_n without_o remove_v the_o stone_n place_n or_o monument_n as_o all_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n affirm_v as_o concern_v that_o article_n article_n against_o the_o 7_o article_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n this_o article_n be_v contradict_v of_o the_o lutheran_n affirm_v heaven_n to_o be_v below_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o hell_n in_o the_o high_a part_n of_o the_o world_n with_fw-mi admonit_fw-la caluinist_n ad_fw-la libr._n concord_n &_o danen_n count_v osiand_n next_o by_o caluin_n say_v lib._n 2._o inst_z cap._n 14_o §_o 8._o that_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n will_v continue_v no_o long_o then_o till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n likewise_o beza_n impugn_v this_o article_n in_o cap._n 3._o act._n v._o 21._o say_v his_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n his_o father_n do_v hinder_v his_o true_a be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o likewise_o caluin_n lib._n 2._o inst_z cap._n 14._o §_o 3._o deny_v that_o he_o surpass_v the_o quality_n of_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o consequent_o can_v never_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n likewise_o some_o other_o affirm_v his_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n to_o argue_v a_o inferiority_n or_o inequality_n with_o god_n the_o father_n or_o that_o god_n the_o father_n have_v a_o spiritual_a kind_n of_o body_n have_v hand_n etc._n etc._n vid._n inter_v mangerie_n pag._n 157._o &_o niverium_n in_o bello_fw-la 5._o euang._n pag._n 72._o likewise_o caluin_n deny_v and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v there_o be_v any_o place_n in_o heaven_n whereunto_o christ_n be_v ascend_v or_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n accept_v likewise_o many_o protestant_n hold_v opinion_n that_o christ_n ascension_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o disappear_a without_o any_o motion_n upward_o where_o he_o be_v before_o ita_fw-la jos._n simler_n in_o vita_fw-la bull_v fol._n 35.55_o luth._o tom_n 7._o wittemb_n fol._n 408.409_o and_o concern_v that_o article_n article_n against_o the_o 8._o article_n from_o thence_o shall_v he_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a this_o article_n be_v impugn_a by_o those_o who_o grant_v a_o general_n judgement_n at_o the_o day_n of_o doom_n but_o deny_v he_o to_o judge_v with_o any_o particular_a judgement_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n likewise_o some_o hold_n that_o only_a infidelity_n be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o judgement_n luther_n sup_v lykwyse_o this_o article_n be_v impugn_a of_o those_o who_o say_v that_o god_n will_v judge_v injust_o as_o luth._o tom_n 2_o fol._n 461._o de_fw-la seruo_fw-la arb._n say_v that_o like_a as_o god_n in_o this_o life_n have_v pour_v mercy_n &_o grace_n upon_o the_o unworthy_a even_o so_o in_o his_o judgement_n he_o shall_v pour_v anger_n and_o severity_n upon_o the_o undeseruing_a which_o injustice_n demonstrate_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o evil_a not_o only_o by_o provocation_n but_o by_o impulsion_n and_o enforcement_n for_o be_v the_o forcer_n to_o evil_a how_o can_v he_o punish_v they_o just_o who_o obey_v he_o likewise_o they_o deny_v and_o impugn_v this_o article_n who_o affirm_v that_o christ_n who_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v be_v dead_a according_a both_o to_o his_o humanity_n &_o divinity_n and_o this_o musculus_fw-la doubt_v not_o to_o mantayn_v public_o to_o profess_v &_o spread_v abroad_o that_o christ_n remain_v dead_a and_o be_v not_o rise_v neither_o ascend_v or_o yet_o shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n to_o judge_v any_o quick_a or_o dead_a silu_a czecanonicus_n de_fw-fr c●rup_n morib_n viriusque_fw-la part_n art_n 3._o and_o as_o concern_v that_o article_n article_n against_o the_o 9_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n many_o protestant_n believe_v not_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o they_o affirm_v it_o blasphemous_a and_o idolatrous_a to_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n or_o to_o have_v have_v any_o point_n of_o deity_n before_o his_o birth_n of_o the_o bless_a v._o m._n and_o thereby_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n no_o less_o then_o from_o the_o father_n bez._n count_v heshus_n fol._n 284._o &_o colloq_fw-la mompel_v fol._n 77._o likewise_o who_o impugn_v the_o holy_a trinity_n do_v to_o that_o end_n that_o more_o easy_o he_o may_v reject_v the_o holy_a ghost_n zanch_n lib._n 3._o elohim_n simler_n in_o praf_n de_fw-fr aterno_fw-it det_fw-la filio_fw-la unto_o which_o barbarism_n calu._n epist_n ad_fw-la polon_n pag._n 946._o accord_n what_o be_v it_o we_o believe_v one_o god_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v the_o trinity_n believe_v you_o in_o god_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v in_o trinity_n i_o hat_n they_o shall_v know_v thou_o one_o god_n as_o much_o to_o say_v the_o trinity_n this_o be_v not_o only_o unsavery_a but_o also_o profane_a and_o i_o do_v despise_v it_o this_o blasphemous_a derision_n other_o protestant_n dissemble_v not_o but_o rebuke_n in_o high_a manner_n vid._n schlus_n in_o theol._n calu._n lib_n 2._o fol._n 2_o 8_o 14._o 20_o 26._o whereupon_o his_o disciple_n follow_v his_o example_n to_o mock_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o prateol_n in_fw-it haer_fw-mi lib._n 10_o cap_n 10._o say_v nothing_o in_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v have_v of_o his_o divinity_n hereupon_o a_o protestant_n exclaim_v staunch_a in_o ●pistol_n contra_fw-la calu._n num_fw-la 45._o beware_v christian_a reader_n say_v he_o and_o especial_o you_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n beware_v of_o the_o book_n of_o caluin_n &_o especial_o in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n likewise_o another_o john_n schutz_n in_o lib._n 50._o cause_n causa_fw-la 48._o say_n arianisme_n mahumatisme_n &_o caluinisme_n be_v three_o brother_n and_o three_o sister_n &_o three_o breech_n of_o one_o cloth_n &_o he_o that_o will_v not_o fall_v in_o arianisme_n let_v he_o beware_v of_o caluinisme_n who_o as_o a_o jew_n judaizes_n 53_o 53_o moreover_o they_o impugn_v this_o article_n who_o make_v their_o fantastical_a imagination_n the_o very_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o their_o wicked_a inclination_n his_o motion_n so_o zuinglian_n affirm_v he_o to_o have_v this_o spirit_n say_v tom._n 2._o in_o act._n tiguri_n foe_n 609._o i_o know_v for_o certain_a my_o doctrine_n to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o
deform_v the_o protestant_n profession_n be_v concern_v the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n let_v he_o read_v quirinus_n cnoglerus_fw-la de_fw-la symbolo_fw-la caluin_n &_o luther_n and_o he_o shall_v find_v a_o thousand_o point_n of_o misbelief_n and_o filthy_a absurd_a error_n and_o negation_n in_o the_o twelfue_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o right_o they_o conclude_v their_o proposition_n to_o be_v true_a to_o have_v indeed_o in_o their_o reformation_n reject_v all_o papistical_a doctrine_n god_n and_o all_o true_a faith_n and_o therefore_o just_o may_v be_v call_v deformere_n and_o no_o reformer_n qvaestio_n xiiii_o of_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n wherefore_o affirm_v the_o papist_n the_o church_n of_o god_n ever_o to_o be_v visible_a see_v sometime_o though_o have_v perish_v and_o have_v remain_v altogether_o invisible_a luth_n lib._n de_fw-la abrogand_n miss_v caluin_n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 1._o §_o 7._o melanch_n in_o loc_n come_v loc_fw-la 12._o &_o alij_fw-la answer_n good_a friend_n i_o believe_v you_o suppose_v that_o christ_n have_v two_o church_n see_v it_o be_v only_o one_o which_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n be_v visible_a and_o spree_v abroad_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o her_o citizen_n shine_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o crooked_a &_o perverse_a nation_n like_o stair_n in_o the_o firmament_n visible_a the_o church_n be_v visible_a and_o do_v remain_v glorious_a in_o every_o nation_n show_v themselves_o member_n in_o profess_v the_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n of_o this_o visible_a church_n therefore_o one_o it_o be_v and_o not_o many_o public_a and_o not_o hide_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v visible_a the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n be_v place_v in_o the_o son_n nether_a shall_v this_o seem_v marvel_n to_o any_o if_o all_o that_o appertain_v to_o the_o church_n will_v take_v heed_n to_o the_o last_o end_n unto_o which_o all_o do_v tend_v and_o to_o the_o same_o principales_fw-la &_o mediate_n if_o all_o i_o say_v will_v concur_v with_o one_o mind_n to_o wit_n in_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n for_o it_o can_v be_v that_o there_o be_v two_o church_n otherways_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o last_o end_n distinct_a and_o two_o kind_n of_o principal_a mediate_n to_o obtain_v these_o end_n therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o faith_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v ever_o be_v visible_a as_o may_v appear_v of_o her_o note_n and_o by_o many_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o which_o two_o shall_v suffice_v for_o brevity_n sake_n first_o in_o the_o ps_n 18._o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o have_v place_v his_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o foune_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o have_v place_v the_o church_n in_o the_o pure_a light_n that_o it_o may_v be_v visible_a to_o all_o the_o world_n for_o as_o s._n aug_n tract_n 2._o in_o epist._n joh._n say_v he_o have_v place_v his_o church_n in_o the_o son_n not_o in_o the_o night_n but_o in_o the_o day_n again_o he_o say_v what_o more_o be_o i_o to_o say_v they_o that_o he_o be_v blind_a that_o sith_o not_o so_o great_a a_o mountain_n and_o that_o he_o shut_v and_o closs_v his_o eye_n against_o the_o candle_n set_v on_o the_o candelstick_a matth._n 5._o again_o s._n aug_n upon_o the_o 18._o of_o matth._n v._n 15_o our_o saviour_n admonish_v if_o they_o brother_n sin_n against_o thou_o go_v and_o reprove_v he_o betwixt_o thou_o &_o he_o if_o he_o hear_v th●●_n thou_o have_v win_v thy_o brother_n but_o if_o he_o hear_v th●e_n not_o yet_o take_v own_o witness_n with_o thou_o or_o two_o that_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o thou_o witness_n every_o word_n may_v stand_v but_o if_o he_o hear_v thou_o n●t_o ●hen_o tell_v the_o ch●rch_n &_o if_o he_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n i_o hope_v if_o reason_n be_v with_o man_n the_o reform_a will_n here_o consider_v diligent_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be-because_a these_o word_n special_o tell_v the_o church_n be_v to_o recure_v to_o the_o church_n as_o judge_v the_o which_o must_v be_v visible_a for_o no_o judge_n can_v be_v invisible_a if_o he_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n for_o how_o shall_v i_o find_v she_o that_o be_v invisible_a how_o shall_v i_o declare_v to_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a who_o have_v ever_o institute_v recourse_n to_o a_o invisible_a judge_n likewise_o i_o ask_v how_o long_o have_v your_o reform_a church_n be_v invisible_a what_o minyster_n of_o the_o divyne_a word_n have_v you_o have_v with_o you_o what_o sacrament_n and_o how_o be_v they_o minystre_v in_o all_o age_n past_a who_o of_o you_o have_v oppose_v against_o vpryse_v heresy_n for_o somuch_o as_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v oppugn_v in_o every_o age_n answer_v for_o her_o invisibility_n if_o you_o can_v as_o for_o the_o catholic_n and_o to_o their_o purpose_n many_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n serve_v as_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o banquet_n the_o thresk_a floor_n and_o the_o fisher_n net_n the_o sheepfold_a etc._n etc._n all_o which_o do_v prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v visible_a in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o other_o senator_n of_o the_o world_n comper_v s._n aug._n in_o his_o epist_n 161._o ad_fw-la hon._n danat_fw-la make_v mention_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o believe_v it_o of_o faith_n and_o as_o it_o be_v with_o his_o finger_n point_v the_o church_n of_o god_n ever_o to_o be_v visible_a for_o so_o much_o as_o s_n paul_n in_o all_o his_o epistle_n put_v the_o name_n of_o these_o city_n kingdom_n and_o nation_n as_o macedonia_n achaia_n jerusalem_fw-la roman_n hebrews_n corinth_n colloss_n philip_n gallat_n ephes_n likewise_o s._n john_n in_o his_o apocal._n wrytte_v to_o the_o seven_o church_n in_o asia_n etc._n etc._n which_o church_n undoubted_o be_v visible_a as_o the_o other_o church_n rehearse_v thorefore_o the_o church_n be_v not_o invisible_a and_o mathematical_a unknown_a to_o the_o world_n but_o only_o to_o god_n be_v christian_a man_n so_o blind_a as_o yet_o not_o to_o see_v th●s_a church_n before_o your_o doctrine_n which_o of_o necessity_n must_v make_v a_o visible_a church_n for_o if_o the_o church_n he_o invisible_a how_o be_v you_o become_v visible_a for_o pastor_n be_v the_o representation_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n and_o not_o of_o a_o invisible_a who_o be_v so_o blind_a to_o ●ollow_v your_o imaginary_a opinion_n against_o the_o mount_n of_o god_n the_o glorious_a sonn_n &_o the_o burn_a lamp_n &_o to_o make_v the_o church_n obscure_v and_o darken_v through_o your_o idle_a opinion_n observe_v this_o for_o a_o true_a note_n we_o be_v all_o oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n to_o conjoin_v ourselves_o to_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n &_o to_o persevere_v in_o she_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o obey_v her_o head_n &_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n like_a as_o s._n hier._n say_v epist_n ad_fw-la dam._n unto_o thy_o holiness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o join_v and_o concord_n with_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o rock_n whosoever_o be_v without_o this_o house_n shall_v not_o eat_v of_o the_o lamb_n and_o he_o be_v profane_a and_o if_o any_o man_n be_v not_o within_o the_o ark_n of_o noe._n he_o shall_v perish_v endure_v the_o deluge_n now_o true_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o any_o to_o eat_v of_o this_o lamb_n out_o of_o the_o right_a house_n or_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o ark_n of_o no_n who_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v or_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o true_a church_n if_o it_o be_v invisible_a therefore_o as_o the_o israelite_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v the_o visible_a sign_n of_o circumsition_n as_o a_o sacrament_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n even_o so_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n in_o visible_a sign_n as_o a_o sacrament_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n for_o if_o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n there_o be_v ever_o certain_a external_a symbol_n visible_a for_o humane_a society_n &_o observance_n of_o duty_n even_o so_o in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n christ_n have_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n for_o unity_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o member_n of_o his_o church_n for_o as_o s._n aug._n lib._n 19_o cont_n faust._n cap._n 11._o say_v in_o no_o religion_n true_a or_o false_a man_n can_v be_v unite_v without_o visible_a sign_n and_o sacrament_n moreover_o the_o visible_a church_n from_o the_o time_n it_o begin_v it_o never_o fail_v neither_o may_n fail_v because_o before_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a faith_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o and_o likewise_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v in_o some_o man_n who_o make_v up_o a_o church_n
of_o god_n &_o likewise_o that_o church_n which_o be_v after_o christ_n have_v never_o fail_v or_o may_v fail_v according_a to_o that_o stait_z in_o which_o it_o be_v institute_v of_o himself_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v fortolde_v to_o be_v eternal_a as_o psal_n 47_o v._n 9_o be_v say_v as_o we_o have_v hard_a so_o we_o have_v we_o see_v in_o the_o city_n of_o our_o god_n and_o god_n have_v establish_v it_o for_o ever_o which_o psalm_n be_v speak_v altogether_o of_o the_o church_n and_o her_o perpetuity_n likewise_o her_o visibility_n be_v also_o mention_v whyl_v the_o prophet_n say_v as_o we_o have_v hard_a and_o see_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o obscur_o design_v or_o invisible_a also_o dan._n 2._o v._n 44._o say_v that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o those_o king_n the_o god_n of_o heaven_n shall_v set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v and_o this_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v to_o another_o people_n but_o it_o shall_v break_v and_o destroy_v all_o these_o kingdom_n and_o it_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o moreover_o s._n matth._n 16._o v._n 18._o say_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o for_o as_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a head_n there_o must_v be_v a_o visible_a body_n and_o see_v christ_n be_v see_v in_o earth_n &_o do_v converse_v with_o man_n shall_v not_o his_o body_n and_o member_n thereof_o also_o be_v visible_a if_o the_o foundament_n be_v visible_a it_o behow_v also_o the_o house_n to_o be_v visible_a and_o see_v the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v foundament_n of_o his_o church_n ephes_n 2._o who_o can_v deny_v the_o building_n not_o to_o be_v visible_a likewise_o our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o spiritual_a but_o also_o be_v bodily_a that_o we_o may_v be_v bone_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n the_o apostle_n call_v it_o a_o great_a sacrament_n eph._n 5._o and_o see_v by_o sacrament_n we_o be_v unite_v and_o know_v together_o which_o be_v visible_a thing_n and_o therefore_o appertain_v to_o a_o visible_a body_n which_o be_v his_o church_n also_o which_o have_v a_o visible_a head_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v ever_o appear_v visible_a whereupon_o chryse_a tom._n 5._o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr non_fw-fr rontemnend_v eccles_n what_o be_v more_o strong_a than_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o barbarous_a may_v pull_v down_o the_o wall_n but_o the_o infernal_a devil_n can_v overcome_v it_o when_o she_o be_v batter_v she_o be_v victor_n and_o when_o she_o be_v invade_v with_o deceit_n overcom_v thus_o he_o and_o s._n bernard_n serm._n 79._o neither_o by_o the_o verbosity_n of_o philosopher_n neither_o cavillation_n of_o heretycke_n neither_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o persecutor_n may_v the_o church_n at_o any_o time_n be_v separat_fw-la from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n thus_o he_o moreover_o it_o be_v say_v eph._n 4._o v._n 11._o he_o gane_z some_o to_o be_v apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n &_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o ●●summation_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n whyll_n we_o all_o mere_a together_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o knowledge_n of_o the_o soon_o of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n and_o unto_o the_o measur_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o word_n the_o apostle_n rehearse_v these_o office_n apostle_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o abyd_a in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n declare_v the_o church_n to_o be_v visible_a which_o no_o way_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o invisible_a church_n by_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o office_n that_o moreover_o it_o implicate_v a_o contradition_n the_o visible_a church_n sometime_o to_o have_v fail_v and_o the_o invisible_a to_o remain_v for_o somuch_o as_o the_o wonder_n of_o the_o world_n be_v note_v partly_o by_o scripture_n as_o the_o deludge_n 25._o gen._n 6_o 4_o reg_n 17_o matth._n 25._o the_o go_v back_o of_o the_o son_n the_o son_n &_o moan_n to_o have_v lose_v their_o light_n and_o darkness_n to_o have_v over_o shadow_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n lykwyse_o historiographer_n and_o chronology_n make_v mention_n of_o erthquake_n fire_n tempest_n pestilence_n and_o such_o like_a prodigious_a thing_n which_o be_v register_v and_o be_v extant_a in_o every_o man_n hand_n and_o yet_o what_o time_n the_o church_n fail_v and_o become_v invisible_a there_o be_v no_o scripture_n no_o chronology_n no_o witness_n ever_o to_o be_v find_v but_o only_o clamorous_a man_n voice_n to_o say_v it_o once_o it_o be_v visible_a this_o they_o grant_v but_o how_o in_o fail_v it_o be_v improbable_a for_o if_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v fail_v and_o the_o invisible_a remain_n and_o be_v not_o see_v there_o follow_v to_o wild_a absurdity_n for_o either_o she_o profess_v her_o faith_n and_o yield_v not_o to_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o gentill_n or_o hecetick_n and_o in_o so_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o she_o be_v visible_a as_o the_o primitue_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n in_o time_n of_o persecutor_n for_o in_o profession_n &_o suffer_v sho_fw-mi appear_v and_o be_v a_o spectacle_n to_o the_o world_n and_o contrary_n wise_a if_o she_o profess_v not_o her_o say_v but_o lurk_v and_o retain_v it_o inward_o in_o the_o hart_n and_o outward_o by_o dissimulation_n accommodate_v herself_o to_o the_o time_n in_o follow_v of_o false_a worship_n as_o the_o helchesi●nes_n do_v as_o witness_v euse_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 31._o in_o so_o do_v sho_fw-mi can_v be_v account_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n say_v matth._n 10._o ●_o 33_o who_o shall_v deny_v i_o before_o man_n he_o shall_v i_o deny_v before_o my_o father_n in_o heaven_n therefore_o the_o church_n in_o vigour_n and_o subsistence_n can_v want_v a_o sign_n of_o visibility_n morover_n the_o church_n contain_v alswell_o the_o universality_n of_o faithful_a as_o of_o bishop_n absolute_o can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o universal_o either_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o faith_n or_o propound_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v do_v for_o good_a manner_n whether_o express_o they_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o no_o because_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v of_o christ_n the_o head_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v ephes_n 1._o u_fw-la 22._o he_o have_v give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n and_o therefore_o if_o sho_fw-mi may_v err_v it_o redound_v unto_o christ_n which_o according_a to_o the_o verity_n itself_o no_o manner_n of_o way_n may_v fall_v because_o god_n be_v true_a and_o because_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundament_n of_o verity_n 1._o tim._n 3_o v._n 15._o therefore_o sho_fw-mi can_v err_v likewise_o christ_n promise_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o spirit_n of_o verity_n to_o abyd_a with_o she_o for_o ever_o and_o to_o lead_v she_o in_o all_o verity_n s_o joan._n 14._o &_o 16._o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o simple_a verity_n because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v general_o of_o all_o verity_n descrybe_a the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o teach_v the_o church_n and_o sho_fw-mi to_o be_v a_o pillar_n of_o verity_n that_o in_o nothing_o sho_fw-mi shall_v err_v otherways_o if_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o teach_n thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n no_o man_n shall_v know_v where_o the_o verity_n be_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v find_v the_o liar_n for_o have_v not_o all_o the_o father_n in_o whatsoever_o question_n and_o controversy_n of_o faith_n flee_v to_o the_o church_n as_o unto_o the_o ancher_n of_o verity_n they_o will_v never_o have_v take_v this_o refuge_n if_o they_o think_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v to_o this_o effect_n s._n aug._n lib._n 1._o contra_fw-la cresc_n c._n 33._o say_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v keep_v of_o we_o see_v we_o do_v that_o thing_n which_o have_v please_v the_o universal_a church_n the_o which_o do_v commend_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o self_n scripture_n forsomuch_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v deceive_v none_o but_o whosoever_o have_v fear_v to_o be_v deceive_v by_o obscurity_n of_o any_o question_n let_v he_o consult_v with_o the_o church_n which_o without_o any_o ambiguity_n do_v demonstrate_v and_o shaw_n the_o holy_a scripture_n again_o epist_n 118._o to_o dispute_v against_o that_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v it_o be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n again_o in_o psal_n 57_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o verity_n remain_v
whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o this_o bowel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o necessity_n he_o must_v speak_v false_a i_o say_v of_o necessity_n he_o must_v speak_v false_a who_o either_o will_v not_o be_v conceive_v or_o either_o of_o the_o mother_n be_v make_v abortive_a be_v once_o conceive_v which_o church_n serm_n ad_fw-la catachum_fw-la cap._n 20._o he_o call_v a_o true_a mother_n a_o godly_a mother_n a_o chaste_a spouse_n garnish_v with_o the_o dignity_n and_o riches_n of_o her_o husband_n not_o in_o outward_a show_n by_o lie_v deceit_n but_o in_o verity_n which_o can_v err_v and_o if_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n may_v err_v consequent_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v for_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o follow_v their_o pastor_n mat._n 23._o v._n 3._o from_o whence_o then_o be_v the_o protestant_n church_n see_v the_o church_n be_v invisible_a and_o have_v err_v etc._n etc._n objection_n it_o be_v write_v say_v they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o come_v with_o observation_n luc_n 17_o neither_o shall_v they_o say_v behold_v here_o or_o behold_v there_o luc._n 17_o v._n 21_o therefore_o the_o church_n which_o be_v thè_z kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v invisible_a and_o may_v not_o be_v see_v answer_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n answer_n be_v make_v say_v behold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o you_o or_o among_o you_o for_o in_o the_o objection_n christ_n repelle_n the_o vain_a opinion_n of_o the_o pharisy_n who_o think_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o have_v his_o begin_v with_o observation_n of_o worldly_a pomp_n with_o triumph_n and_o public_a coronation_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o worldly_a prince_n make_v his_o residence_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o answer_v they_o that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v not_o reign_v that_o manner_n of_o way_n but_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o wit_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o in_o his_o church_n which_o then_o consist_v in_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n which_o in_o another_o place_n he_o verifi_v say_v bliss_v be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n luc._n 6._o v._n 20._o as_o though_o he_o will_v say_v you_o be_v member_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n with_o peace_n without_o worldly_a tumult_n and_o triumph_n from_o which_o the_o scotfree_a pharisy_n be_v far_o of_o likewise_o s._n pet._n 1._o epi._n cap._n 2._o v._n 5._o say_v the_o church_n be_v a_o spiritual_a house_n to_o wit_n not_o according_a to_o the_o invisible_a substance_n as_o angel_n or_o soul_n etc._n etc._n neither_o say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o gross_a material_n but_o of_o consecrate_a and_o sanctify_a man_n to_o god_n unite_v in_o one_o body_n and_o mind_n as_o be_v the_o multitud_n of_o believer_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n objection_n you_o have_v not_o come_v to_o the_o mount_n that_o may_v not_o be_v touch_v and_o to_o the_o burn_v fire_n hebr._n 12._o v._o 18._o &_o 22._o but_o you_o have_v come_v to_o the_o mount_n zion_n the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n therefore_o the_o church_n be_v not_o visible_a for_o that_o the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v not_o visible_a answer_n the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n deny_v not_o the_o visibilitye_n of_o the_o church_n but_o discrybe_n the_o beauty_n of_o the_o triumphant_a church_n in_o call_v it_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v say_v the_o faithful_a have_v to_o approach_v by_o faith_n and_o hope_v not_o that_o there_o be_v two_o church_n see_v that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o but_o build_v with_o diverse_a estate_n to_o wit_n perfect_a and_o imperfyt_v unto_o which_o perfection_n the_o militant_a do_v labour_n in_o faith_n and_o hope_v while_z she_o come_v to_o that_o beauty_n end_n which_o be_v describe_v in_o heaven_n objection_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o see_v but_o in_o the_o creed_n we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n be_v believe_v be_v invisible_a answer_n many_o thing_n be_v believe_v which_o notwithstanding_o be_v see_v as_o christ_n be_v see_v with_o man_n eye_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v believe_v the_o messiah_n and_o god_n and_o this_o he_o prove_v himself_o johan._n 20._o v._o 29._o saying_n because_o thou_o have_v see_v i_o thomas_n thou_o have_v believe_v ergo_fw-la christ_n be_v see_v and_o believe_v likewise_o in_o baptism_n we_o see_v water_n and_o the_o application_n there_o of_o with_o the_o prolation_n of_o word_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o we_o see_v not_o be_v effect_v which_o be_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v take_v away_o justify_v grace_n be_v infuse_v a_o character_n be_v impress_v in_o the_o soul_n none_o of_o these_o be_v see_v and_o yet_o faith_n believe_v they_o for_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n see_v and_o other_o thing_n believe_v even_o so_o in_o the_o church_n we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n a_o company_n of_o man_n profess_v themselves_o christianes_n under_o the_o government_n of_o a_o head_n but_o that_o that_o company_n be_v the_o very_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n we_o believe_v so_o that_o some_o thing_n be_v see_v and_o some_o thing_n believe_v be_v therefore_o the_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n to_o be_v abolish_v and_o to_o say_v i_o see_v and_o suppose_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o deny_v to_o say_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n this_o article_n contain_v many_o thing_n more_o proper_a to_o faith_n then_o reason_n because_o we_o see_v not_o the_o elect_a neither_o do_v we_o know_v they_o and_o yet_o we_o firm_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v in_o this_o company_n as_o likewise_o we_o believe_v this_o company_n and_o church_n to_o be_v rule_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v he_o not_o and_o to_o be_v without_o error_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o verity_n and_o in_o this_o church_n only_o to_o be_v remission_n of_o sin_n justification_n the_o infusion_n of_o grace_n hope_v of_o eternal_a lyf_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o her_o true_a interpretation_n dispensation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o true_a preach_v of_o god_n word_n and_o out_o of_o this_o company_n and_o holy_a church_n no_o mortal_a man_n can_v attain_v to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n or_o eternal_a salvation_n all_o these_o be_v believe_v and_o be_v not_o see_v nor_o know_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n be_v visible_a objection_n adam_n and_o eva_n have_v sin_v therefore_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n which_o consist_v in_o these_o two_o person_n have_v faill_v and_o err_v ergo_fw-la answer_v adam_n and_o eva_n be_v not_o the_o church_n but_o her_o begin_n neither_o err_v they_o in_o teachinge_a of_o false_a doctrine_n but_o as_o private_a person_n do_v evil_a or_o think_v evil_a objection_n in_o the_o time_n of_o isai_n and_o other_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n it_o appear_v to_o have_v faill_v for_o isai_n say_v 1._o cap._n v._o 3._o that_o israel_n have_v not_o know_v i_o and_o in_o the_o 6._o v._n he_o say_v that_o from_o the_o sole_n of_o the_o foot_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n there_o be_v no_o whole_a place_n likewise_o hier._n 2._o v._n 29._o you_o have_v leave_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n et_fw-fr psal_n 13._o v._n 3._o all_o have_v decline_v and_o be_v make_v altogether_o unprofitable_a there_o be_v not_o one_o who_o do_v good_a there_o be_v not_o one_o whereupon_o we_o gather_v both_o the_o church_n to_o be_v invisible_a and_o to_o have_v err_v answer_n albeit_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n have_v fail_v which_o i_o grant_v not_o notwithstanding_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v fail_v because_o the_o synagoge_n be_v not_o a_o universal_a company_n of_o god_n peopl_n but_o a_o particular_a in_o which_o be_v many_o who_o live_v holy_a and_o err_v not_o as_o melchisedech_n job_n cornelius_n centurio_n the_o queen_n of_o candy_n eunuch_n and_o all_o these_o be_v find_v both_o righteous_a and_o faithful_a morover_n the_o prophet_n speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o speech_n pass_v as_o a_o universal_a sign_n how_o beit_n in_o truth_n all_o be_v not_o such_o for_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n to_o affirm_v that_o all_o man_n have_v fall_v from_o god_n absolute_o but_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o divyne_a providence_n of_o god_n say_v there_o be_v no_o god_n and_o to_o be_v none_o who_o do_v good_a notwithstanding_o a_o little_a after_o he_o declaire_v some_o to_o be_v good_a who_o he_o call_v the_o people_n of_o god_n poor_a jacob_n and_o israel_n and_o
consequent_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v invisible_a nor_o err_v at_o that_o tyme._n objection_n saint_n hier._n dial._n count_v lucif_n the_o whole_a world_n say_v he_o have_v sorrow_v and_o marvel_v to_o be_v a_o arian_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n have_v err_v answer_n he_o call_v the_o world_n a_o great_a part_n not_o absolute_o the_o whole_a world_n likewise_o these_o catholic_a bishop_n be_v assemble_v at_o arimin_n to_o abolishe_v that_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o which_o counsel_n they_o only_o material_o err_v not_o know_v the_o true_a signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n neither_o be_v these_o father_n heretic_n for_o forth_o with_o know_v the_o error_n they_o amend_v it_o with_o penance_n objection_n all_o the_o apostle_n in_o time_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n lose_v their_o faith_n therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n some_o time_n have_v err_v the_o antecedent_n be_v prove_v matth._n 26._o v._n 31._o all_o you_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v in_o i_o this_o night_n luc._n 24._o v._n 11._o but_o these_o word_n seem_v to_o they_o as_o feign_v neither_o believe_v they_o he_o marc._n ult._n and_o he_o reprove_v their_o incredulite_n and_o hardness_n of_o hart_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o these_o who_o have_v see_v he_o rise_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n have_v err_v answer_n the_o apostle_n at_o that_o time_n sin_v because_o they_o be_v slow_a to_o believe_v and_o be_v worthy_a of_o reprehension_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v not_o infidel_n howbeit_o they_o commit_v a_o sin_n in_o over_o much_o fear_v quia_fw-la timor_fw-la cadit_fw-la in_o virum_fw-la iustam_fw-la neither_o at_o this_o time_n have_v they_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o doctor_n of_o verity_n to_o preserve_v they_o from_o humane_a error_n and_o fear_n neither_o by_o this_o argument_n have_v the_o church_n err_v qvaestio_n xv._o the_o interdict_v of_o scripture_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n interdict_v and_o forbid_v the_o people_n the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v easy_a of_o understanding_n and_o clear_a in_o themselves_o luth._o do_v lib._n arb._n caluin_n lib._n 1._o instit_fw-la cap._n 7._o §_o 2._o beza_n conf_n fid_fw-we punct_a 4._o art_n 27._o brent_n prolog_n count_v à_fw-fr soto_n illiric_n in_o cleave_v script_n etc._n etc._n answer_n i_o deny_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v easy_a of_o understanding_n as_o you_o persuade_v yourselves_o for_o it_o be_v a_o book_n full_a of_o mystery_n and_o difficulty_n the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o none_o can_v attain_v without_o the_o great_a help_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o moral_a science_n so_o that_o the_o vulgar_a read_n of_o the_o same_o without_o understanding_n have_v give_v occasion_n to_o many_o to_o interpret_v they_o after_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o filthy_o to_o err_v as_o the_o evidence_n bear_v witness_n from_o whence_o be_v heresy_n schism_n and_o dissension_n be_v they_o not_o build_v on_o the_o scripture_n because_o that_o every_o man_n will_v understand_v it_o after_o his_o own_o opinion_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o facile_a of_o understanding_n for_o the_o disciple_n they_o self_n be_v whole_a three_o year_n under_o the_o instruction_n of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o master_n of_o verity_n who_o be_v ever_o by_o he_o and_o often_o they_o hear_v he_o preach_v of_o his_o suffering_n death_n and_o resurrection_n notwitgstand_v they_o understand_v not_o the_o scripture_n pertain_v to_o that_o neither_o in_o the_o law_n psalm_n nor_o prophet_n until_o christ_n open_v to_o they_o the_o sense_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n luc._n 24._o v._n 45._o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o not_o only_a christ_n have_v expound_v the_o scripture_n to_o they_o as_o a_o little_a before_o he_o do_v to_o his_o disciple_n go_v to_o emaus_n but_o also_o he_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n a_o certain_a divyne_a grace_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a when_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n be_v thus_o dull_a to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n how_o shall_v the_o vulgar_a people_n understand_v they_o moreover_o s._n peter_n 2._o epist._n cap._n 3._o five_o 15._o say_n as_o our_o belove_a brother_n paul_n according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v to_o he_o have_v writtin_n to_o you_o and_o as_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n speak_v of_o they_o in_o which_o there_o be_v some_o difficil_n to_o understand_v which_o the_o unlearned_a &_o instable_n deprave_v therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o writing_n of_o s_o paul_n be_v not_o to_o every_o one_o plain_a but_o many_o thing_n difficil_n to_o understand_v moreover_o to_o what_o end_n have_v the_o learned_a labour_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o tongue_n to_o seek_v and_o search_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o it_o be_v so_o easy_a of_o understanding_n why_o do_v s._n hiero._n vex_v himself_o above_o twenty_o year_n in_o study_v the_o scripture_n a_o man_n instruct_v in_o all_o tongue_n and_o endue_v with_o most_o singular_a learning_n yet_o we_o read_v of_o he_o that_o oft_o he_o doubt_v in_o expound_v the_o prophet_n and_o have_v be_v in_o ecstasy_n of_o mind_n through_o the_o profunde_n obscurity_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o same_o labyrinth_n be_v s_n august_n the_o pillar_n of_o divinity_n whilst_o he_o explicate_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lib._n 2._o the_o doct_n christ_n cap._n 6._o in_o which_o he_o himself_o think_v not_o to_o have_v labour_v sufficient_o because_o of_o the_o difficulty_n that_o arise_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v above_o his_o judgement_n therefore_o s_n hier._n epist_n ad_fw-la paulin._n say_v the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a and_o have_v need_n of_o revelation_n that_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v as_o also_o that_o we_o may_v contemplate_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o reveal_v face_n of_o god_n the_o seal_a book_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n with_o seven_o seall_n be_v show_v which_o if_o thou_o shall_v give_v it_o to_o a_o man_n of_o understanding_n to_o read_v he_o will_v answer_v thou_o i_o can_v for_o it_o be_v seall_v how_o many_o at_o this_o day_n think_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o understanding_n &_o literature_n and_o yet_o hold_v the_o seal_a book_n in_o their_o hand_n neither_o may_v they_o open_v it_o except_o he_o open_v it_o who_o have_v the_o key_n of_o david_n who_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v &_o shut_v and_o no_o man_n open_v thus_o he_o morover_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n and_o luke_n seem_v to_o vary_v in_o the_o genealogy_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o luke_n say_v that_o joseph_n be_v the_o son_n of_o heli_n &_o s._n matthew_n say_v that_o jacob_n beget_v joseph_n which_o disagreement_n julian_n the_o apostate_n object_v to_o christian_n likewise_o s._n chryst._n 1_o matth._n say_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v number_v among_o hide_a thing_n how_o that_o elizabeth_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n may_v be_v call_v the_o cousin_n of_o mary_n who_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n moreover_o s_n mark_v speak_v of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n say_v of_o that_o day_n &_o hour_n no_o man_n know_v it_o neither_o the_o angel_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n neither_o the_o son_n himself_o but_o only_o the_o father_n in_o read_v this_o no_o man_n see_v the_o doubt_n likewise_o s._n hier._n receive_v some_o question_n of_o algasia_n and_o hedibia_n about_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o first_o be_v why_o do_v john_n in_o prison_n send_v to_o christ_n &_o demand_v say_v be_v thou_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v or_o shall_v we_o look_v for_o a_o other_o who_o before_o have_v point_v he_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n how_o come_v he_o now_o to_o ask_v &_o doubt_v of_o he_o hedibia_n ad_fw-la hier._n 20._o matth._n 28._o john_n 20._o 4.5_o how_o agree_v this_o that_o matthew_n say_v that_o mary_n magdalen_n fall_v down_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o hold_v his_o foot_n &_o s._n john_n say_v the_o contrary_a that_o he_o forbid_v she_o to_o touch_v he_o john_n 20._o lykwyse_a s._n mark_n say_v 20._o matth._n 16._o john_n 20._o that_o the_o two_o maryes_fw-mi in_o the_o morning_n in_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o sabbath_n they_o come_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n when_o the_o son_n be_v rise_v and_o s._n john_n say_v the_o contrary_a that_o they_o come_v when_o it_o be_v dark_a lykwyse_o in_o the_o resurrection_n 16._o matth._n 28._o john_n 20._o marc._n 16._o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o apparent_a contrariety_n as_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n their_o
number_n and_o place_n moreover_o that_o christ_n breathe_v on_o his_o apostle_n say_v receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o if_o he_o give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o his_o ascension_n what_o need_v he_o to_o send_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n after_o his_o ascension_n see_v they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n already_o hidib_n quaest_a 9_o likewise_o s._n paul_n say_v rom._n 3._o we_o think_v a_o man_n to_o be_v iustify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o contrariwyse_o s._n james_n cap._n 2._o say_v what_o avayl_v it_o though_o a_o man_n say_v he_o have_v faith_n if_o he_o have_v no_o work_n can_v his_o faith_n save_o he_o for_o without_o work_n faith_n be_v dead_a moreover_o it_o be_v say_v rom._n 5._o that_o faith_n be_v reckon_v to_o abraham_n for_o righteousness_n and_o contrariwyse_o s._n jac._n 2._o say_v that_o abraham_n our_o father_n be_v iustify_v by_o work_n likewise_o s._n paul_n rom._n 10._o declare_v the_o rejection_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n allege_v the_o prophet_n isai_n say_v i_o be_o find_v of_o they_o that_o seek_v i_o not_o and_o manifest_v to_o they_o that_o ask_v not_o for_o i_o but_o unto_o israel_n all_o the_o day_n long_o i_o have_v streach_v forth_o my_o hand_n unto_o a_o people_n that_o believe_v i_o not_o but_o speak_v against_o i_o and_o after_o this_o he_o say_v have_v god_n cast_v away_o his_o people_n god_n forbid_v if_o the_o cast_v away_o of_o they_o be_v the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o world_n have_v they_o so_o offend_v and_o stumble_v that_o they_o shall_v fall_v he_o answer_n saying_n god_n forbid_v and_o yet_o after_o this_o he_o argument_n the_o contrary_a say_v because_o of_o unbelief_n they_o be_v break_v and_o cast_v away_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v this_o place_n by_o read_v the_o plain_a text_n easy_o understand_v how_o opposite_a be_v the_o apostle_n to_o the_o reader_n judgement_n lykwyse_o about_o predestination_n rom._n 9_o where_o he_o say_v that_o it_o lie_v not_o in_o the_o will_n of_o man_n neither_o in_o the_o run_n of_o man_n but_o in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n again_o the_o apostle_n be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o rom._n 7._o saying_n will_n be_v present_a with_o i_o moreover_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n timoth._n cap._n 2._o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n if_o god_n so_o will_v who_o can_v gainstand_v his_o will_n why_o then_o do_v so_o many_o perish_v among_o christian_n and_o other_o remain_v in_o infidility_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 9_o wish_v to_o be_v accurse_v for_o his_o brother_n the_o jew_n &_o yet_o he_o say_v that_o nothing_o can_v separate_v he_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n roman_n 8._o what_o may_v be_v gather_v of_o these_o word_n but_o that_o he_o love_v the_o jew_n better_a than_o christ_n algasia_fw-la ad_fw-la hier._n q_o 9_o likewise_o s_n paul_n cor_fw-la 15._o say_v when_o all_o thing_n be_v subdue_v under_o he_o then_o shall_v the_o son_n also_o himself_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o that_o put_v all_o thing_n under_o he_o that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o this_o place_n fit_v well_o caluin_n with_o the_o arian_n to_o make_v christ_n inferior_a to_o his_o father_n lykwyse_o the_o apostle_n say_v coll._n 1_o that_o he_o do_v fulfil_v that_o lack_v of_o christ_n suffering_n in_o his_o body_n this_o place_n seem_v to_o make_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n insufficient_a if_o we_o understand_v it_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n likewise_o to_o the_o hebrews_n 6._o saying_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o those_o who_o once_o be_v illuminate_v &_o have_v gu_v the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v participant_a of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n &_o of_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v if_o they_o fall_v away_o understanding_n the_o scripture_n be_v of_o difficile_a understanding_n shall_v be_v renew_v again_o by_o penance_n which_o in_o cap._n 10._o for_o sin_v willing_o after_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o verity_n there_o be_v not_o leave_v now_o for_o sin_n any_o sacrifice_n but_o a_o terrible_a expectation_n of_o judgement_n and_o burn_a fire_n if_o these_o place_n be_v not_o favourable_o interpret_v by_o the_o literal_a sense_n no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o if_o a_o man_n sin_n after_o he_o be_v christen_v and_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n that_o after_o he_o can_v be_v reconcile_v with_o penance_n and_o by_o this_o all_o hope_n of_o mercy_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o which_o argument_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o novatus_fw-la heresy_n moreover_o s._n hier._n ad_fw-la algas_n quest_n 7._o say_v what_o be_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n scripture_n what_o wonderful_a heresy_n have_v rise_v of_o the_o scripture_n that_o scharce_o will_v any_o man_n die_v for_o the_o righteous_a man_n peradventure_o for_o a_o good_a man_n dare_v a_o man_n die_v the_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v plain_a and_o easy_a of_o understanding_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o for_o lack_v of_o knowledge_n two_o great_a heresy_n arise_v of_o this_o sentence_n for_o martion_n by_o this_o defend_v that_o there_o be_v two_o god_n one_o just_a creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o author_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n the_o other_o a_o good_a god_n the_o god_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o apostle_n who_o son_n be_v christ_n for_o the_o just_a god_n few_o or_o none_o have_v dye_v for_o the_o good_a god_n innumerable_a martyr_n have_v dye_v thus_o martion_n likewise_o arius_n be_v in_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o just_a god_n by_o this_o argument_n ps_n 71._o give_v the_o king_n thy_o judgement_n o_o god_n and_o thy_o righteousness_n to_o the_o king_n son_n and_o the_o other_o good_a god_n he_o call_v the_o father_n &_o god_n of_o heaven_n by_o reason_n by_o the_o evangelist_n luc._n 18._o why_o call_v you_o i_o good_a see_v there_o be_v none_o good_a but_o god_n the_o father_n all_o these_o be_v well_o consider_v be_v the_o scripture_n easy_a of_o understanding_n think_v with_o yourselves_o and_o judge_v equal_o and_o if_o so_o be_v why_o have_v your_o chief_a rabbin_n write_v so_o many_o prolix_a commentary_n on_o the_o scripture_n and_o chief_o on_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n institution_n which_o be_v so_o plain_a and_o clear_a in_o themselves_o and_o yet_o there_o have_v rise_v above_o two_o hundrith_n diverse_a opinion_n to_o interpret_v they_o for_o the_o word_n of_o a_o testament_n ought_v to_o be_v plain_a without_o obscurity_n ambiguity_n doubt_n or_o equivocation_n as_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o a_o testament_n require_v therefore_o judicious_a reader_n observe_v diligent_o what_o facility_n be_v in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n when_o in_o one_o word_n there_o be_v above_o two_o hundrith_n explication_n they_o go_v about_o to_o give_v you_o the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n whyll_n they_o infer_v darkness_n and_o shut_v up_o the_o verity_n from_o you_o they_o will_v have_v you_o understand_v the_o hide_a misterye_n of_o god_n by_o read_v and_o yet_o they_o will_v be_v interpreter_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o and_o not_o delyver_v it_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n but_o according_a to_o the_o revelation_n of_o their_o privy_a spirit_n as_o cal._n l._n ●_o inst_z c._n 7_o §_o 2._o who_o say_v the_o obscurity_n and_o hard_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o sense_n and_o understanding_n be_v no_o more_o difficile_a to_o judge_v they_o then_o to_o judge_v the_o colour_n of_o thing_n black_a and_o white_a sweat_n and_o bitter_a which_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o sense_n be_v judge_v so_o that_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o vulgar_a tongue_n give_v occasion_n to_o subvert_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o give_v place_n to_o every_o heresy_n and_o to_o make_v it_o a_o store-house_n of_o each_o dogmatic_a opinion_n as_o luth._o postilla_fw-la dom_n post_fw-la pen_a there_o be_v no_o heresy_n howsoever_o evil_a or_o gross_a it_o be_v which_o will_v not_o defend_v itself_o by_o the_o scripture_n lykwyse_a tert._n lib._n de_fw-fr praesc_fw-la the_o scripture_n say_v he_o be_v the_o book_n of_o heretic_n not_o of_o itself_o but_o occasional_o objection_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n therefore_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o it_o by_o interdiction_n not_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n answer_n it_o be_v true_a the_o scripture_n be_v the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o this_o food_n be_v to_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n as_o mal._n 2._o v._n 7._o the_o lip_n of_o
the_o priest_n keep_v wisdom_n and_o they_o shall_v ask_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n and_o not_o of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o rashness_n s._n hier._n epist_n 103._o reprehend_v that_o every_o one_o will_v challenge_v scripture_n this_o the_o chat_a old_a wife_n this_o the_o dote_a age_a this_o the_o babble_a sophister_n this_o every_o one_o presume_v to_o teach_v before_o he_o learn_v and_o likewise_o tert._n de_fw-fr prasc_n say_v all_o be_v swell_v up_o &_o all_o do_v profess_v knowledge_n yea_o even_o very_o heretical_a woman_n how_o male_a pert_a and_o bold_a they_o be_v to_o teach_v and_o dispute_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o to_o avoid_v these_o absurdity_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n objection_n christ_n give_v thanks_o to_o his_o father_n that_o he_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_n and_o prudent_a and_o have_v reveal_v they_o to_o babe_n matth._n 11._o which_o do_v manifest_v the_o great_a ostentation_n of_o god_n divine_a righteousness_n mercy_n and_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o less_o commend_v to_o the_o unlearned_a of_o spiritual_a understanding_n then_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o prudent_a and_o wise_a but_o the_o papist_n do_v interdict_v the_o people_n this_o knowledge_n in_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o remit_v they_o to_o the_o doctores_fw-la of_o their_o university_n answer_n i_o admit_v the_o antecedent_n and_o deny_v the_o subsequent_a for_o by_o little_a one_o be_v not_o understand_v the_o unlearned_a people_n but_o the_o humble_a and_o meek_a that_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o with_o vain_a science_n such_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n fisher_n who_o altogether_o be_v not_o unlearned_a in_o that_o whole_a three_o year_n they_o be_v conversant_a with_o christ_n the_o master_n of_o verity_n who_o by_o his_o divine_a doctrine_n illuminate_v their_o mind_n and_o understanding_n to_o have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o such_o little_a one_o be_v not_o old-doting-foles_a prating-old-wyfes_a barber_n smith_n etc._n etc._n who_o have_v always_o false_a passage_n search_v not_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o but_o prate_v babble_n and_o read_v they_o in_o their_o shop_n esteem_v more_o of_o their_o own_o judgement_n than_o all_o the_o doctor_n and_o university_n in_o the_o world_n objection_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o faithful_a therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v read_v and_o be_v plain_a to_o every_o man_n mind_n and_o understanding_n answer_n i_o grant_v it_o be_v but_o not_o to_o be_v expound_v of_o all_o because_o s._n ambrose_n call_v it_o the_o priest_n book_n neither_o be_v it_o without_o a_o cause_n that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v most_o sure_o keep_v in_o the_o temple_n by_o the_o priest_n as_o relate_v s._n aug._n lib._n 16._o the_o cruit_v cap._n 13._o and_o therefore_o the_o priest_n book_n be_v not_o book_n for_o the_o vulgar_a people_n objection_n they_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n joa._n 6._o v._n 45._o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o other_o doctor_n for_o the_o people_n than_o the_o scripture_n answer_n i_o deny_v the_o consequent_a for_o it_o be_v not_o there_o signify_v that_o all_o people_n shall_v understand_v all_o scripture_n without_o any_o external_a doctor_n of_o god_n by_o his_o inspiration_n as_o they_o dream_v but_o he_o say_v all_o shall_v be_v teach_v of_o god_n in_o the_o last_o time_n which_o doctrine_n be_v fulfil_v by_o christ_n and_o after_o he_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o pour_v in_o his_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n true_a faith_n so_o that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o true_a faith_n be_v public_o denounce_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n whereby_o every_o one_o may_v be_v teach_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o not_o by_o naked_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o assumption_n make_v against_o themselves_o to_o what_o end_n be_v minister_n and_o preicher_n admit_v among_o the_o protestant_n if_o all_o man_n by_o read_v the_o bible_n may_v be_v sufficient_o teach_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n of_o god_n by_o inward_a inspiration_n and_o of_o his_o own_o read_n aswell_o as_o by_o their_o preach_n objection_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n but_o this_o key_n ought_v to_o be_v know_v to_o all_o ergo._n and_o the_o scripture_n answer_n origine_fw-la lib._n 4._o de_fw-la princ_fw-la cap._n 2._o say_v that_o the_o inter_v pretation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n draw_v from_o the_o self_n same_o scripture_n but_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v not_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n because_o the_o scripture_n can_v warrant_v itself_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o authority_n and_o spiritual_a interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spiritual_a key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o not_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n objection_n the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n bring_v consolation_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o people_n therefore_o it_o be_v good_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v read_v of_o the_o vulgar_a for_o consolation_n cause_n answer_n it_o be_v true_a but_o not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o give_v consolation_n to_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n sermon_n meditation_n &_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o the_o naked_a read_n of_o the_o bible_n otherwise_o if_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n how_o shall_v the_o poor_a miscrable_a and_o idiot_n who_o can_v not_o read_v have_v any_o consolation_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n consist_v not_o only_o in_o external_a sound_n but_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o understanding_n objection_n christ_n command_v the_o jew_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n john_n 5._o vers_fw-la 39_o and_o the_o same_o likewise_o be_v command_v to_o christian_n to_o try_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o they_o may_v judge_v of_o his_o interpretation_n answer_n the_o word_n search_n both_o in_o latin_a and_o greek_a may_v be_v in_o the_o indicative_a and_o imperative_fw-it mood_n if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o indicative_a as_o d._n stapelton_n say_v the_o sense_n be_v you_o diligent_o inquyre_v the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o there_o you_o do_v find_v of_o i_o and_o these_o be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o there_o be_v none_o other_o than_o writien_n if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o imperative_fw-it christ_n have_v not_o here_o speak_v to_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n but_o to_o the_o scrybe_n psiest_n levite_n and_o pharisy_n with_o who_o be_v the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n who_o have_v their_o daily_a conversation_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o for_o probability_n herod_n affirm_v while_z he_o assemble_v the_o scryb_n matt._n 2._o to_o inquyre_v of_o they_o where_o christ_n shall_v be_v bear_v objection_n the_o beronenses_n do_v search_v the_o scripture_n after_o the_o preach_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o be_v commend_v that_o they_o bestow_v themselves_o daily_o in_o search_v the_o scripture_n concern_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v affirm_v by_o paul_n and_o silas_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n answer_n the_o beronenses_n search_v the_o scripture_n after_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o as_o doubt_v of_o the_o word_n but_o diligent_o attend_v lest_o with_o new_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n they_o may_v also_o be_v deceive_v for_o as_o yet_o the_o beronenses_n have_v not_o make_v profession_n of_o christ_n name_n neither_o be_v they_o bind_v to_o credit_v the_o apostle_n except_o their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v prove_v with_o miracle_n or_o else_o by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n but_o far_o other_o way_n the_o reform_a use_n to_o do_v who_o will_v mix_v their_o private_a interpretation_n with_o the_o scripture_n repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n &_o church_n in_o raise_v new_a opinion_n and_o renew_v old_a damn_a heresy_n objection_n lvther_n de_fw-fr ser_n arbit_n teach_v and_o constant_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n in_o themselves_o be_v easy_a of_o understanding_n and_o need_v no_o interpreter_n yea_o all_o man_n be_v teach_v of_o god_n and_o his_o spirit_n &_o need_v not_o to_o be_v teach_v of_o any_o other_o therefore_o as_o they_o be_v facile_a in_o understanding_n so_o shall_v they_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n without_o interdiction_n answer_n where_o difficulty_n be_v it_o be_v not_o plain_a neither_o facile_a to_o all_o man_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o difficulty_n for_o it_o be_v the_o storehouse_n of_o god_n secret_n ergo._n moreover_o the_o disciple_n hear_v christ_n dispute_v about_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n and_o because_o they_o be_v his_o disciple_n shall_v have_v better_o digest_v christ_n word_n they_o the_o people_n
who_o notwithstanding_o gross_o say_v how_o can_v he_o give_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v this_o be_v a_o hard_a say_n so_o that_o neither_o the_o jew_n nor_o his_o disciple_n who_o shall_v exceed_v other_o do_v attain_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o christ_n word_n as_o note_v chrys_n in_o c._n 6._o john_n what_o they_o be_v this_o word_n hard_a and_o a_o saying_n not_o easy_a of_o understanding_n which_o be_v full_a of_o dread_n that_o their_o imbecility_n can_v not_o bear_v it_o etc._n etc._n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a it_o be_v no_o great_a benefit_n that_o christ_n do_v to_o his_o apostle_n in_o open_v their_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o great_a matter_n that_o he_o hide_v to_o his_o two_o disciple_n go_v to_o emaus_n unto_o who_o begin_v at_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n he_o interpret_v in_o all_o scripture_n which_o be_v write_v of_o he_o for_o this_o action_n of_o christ_n argue_v difficulty_n otherways_o why_o do_v he_o labour_v to_o much_o to_o make_v they_o understand_v they_o the_o eunuch_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o candy_n read_v the_o scripture_n confess_v that_o he_o understand_v they_o not_o and_o yet_o a_o man_n of_o good_a experience_n to_o this_o effect_n phil●p_n be_v move_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o join_v he_o to_o his_o chariot_n who_o hear_v he_o read_v i_o say_v the_o prophet_n and_o ask_v he_o if_o he_o understand_v what_o he_o read_v he_o answer_v how_o can_v i_o except_o i_o have_v a_o guy_z de_fw-la wherefore_o when_o philip_n be_v with_o he_o in_o his_o chariot_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v read_v the_o eunuch_n ask_v he_o say_v i_o pray_v thou_o of_o who_o speak_v the_o prophet_n of_o himself_o or_o some_o other_o man_n then_o philip_n open_v his_o mouth_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o same_o scripture_n and_o preach_v unto_o he_o jesus_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o place_v philip_n to_o he_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v difficulty_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o this_o man_n can_v not_o understand_v without_o a_o guide_n for_o all_o his_o experience_n no_o more_o can_v other_o man_n do_v moreover_o when_o christ_n speak_v of_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n his_o apostle_n understand_v he_o not_o say_v after_o a_o little_a while_n and_o you_o shall_v not_o see_v i_o and_o again_o after_o a_o while_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o for_o igoe_n to_o the_o father_n joan._n 16._o if_o the_o lively_a voice_n of_o christ_n be_v obscure_a and_o dark_a to_o the_o apostle_n so_o the_o same_o be_v now_o be_v write_v in_o dead_a letter_n for_o the_o lively_a voice_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o great_a force_n than_o the_o letter_n likewise_o s._n paul_n number_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o cor._n 12._o to_o one_o say_v he_o be_v give_v the_o utterance_n of_o wisdom_n and_o to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o knowledge_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o heall_v to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o judgement_n to_o discern_v spirit_n to_o another_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n to_o another_o the_o interpretation_n of_o tongue_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n work_v one_o and_o he_o self_n same_o spirit_n distribute_v to_o every_o man_n several_o as_o he_o will_v therefore_o see_v every_o one_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o utterance_n of_o knowledge_n of_o prophesy_v &c._n &c._n and_o consequent_o also_o no_o more_o understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o these_o gift_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o man_n even_o so_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o easy_a to_o all_o man_n s._n paul_n prove_v this_o well_o by_o the_o order_n and_o disposition_n of_o a_o natural_a body_n from_o which_o he_o deduce_v a_o argument_n to_o prove_v a_o order_n in_o the_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n 1._o cor._n 12._o you_o be_v say_v he_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o therefore_o god_n have_v ordain_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apostle_n next_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n fourthly_a they_o that_o do_v miracle_n five_o the_o gift_n of_o heall_v etc._n etc._n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a of_o understanding_n than_o these_o gift_n be_v superfluous_a for_o where_o every_o one_o understand_v there_o need_v no_o apostle_n prophet_n teacher_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o every_o man_n understand_v than_o every_o one_o have_v all_o these_o gift_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n who_o say_v all_o be_v not_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o s._n hier._n in_o praef_n sup_v ezech._n say_v that_o the_o jew_n may_v not_o read_v the_o book_n of_o genesis_n before_o they_o ere_o thirthy_a year_n of_o age_n but_o the_o protestant_n as_o new-hatched_a chicken_n pipe_n out_o of_o their_o mother_n belly_n prattle_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o experience_n teach_v in_o scotland_n it_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o puritan_n minister_n to_o have_v long_a grace_n but_o also_o the_o chapter_n must_v be_v read_v with_o his_o gloss_n after_o the_o spirit_n and_o jok_v genny_n and_o mady_n etc._n etc._n must_v gather_v and_o repeat_v long_a note_n old_a and_o young_a must_v do_v the_o same_o otherways_o they_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v weak_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o so_o play_v the_o hobly-horse_n in_o the_o scripture_n qvaestio_n xvi_o of_o the_o adulterate_n of_o the_o bible_n wherefore_o do_v the_o papist_n condemn_v our_o reform_a byble_n john_n wigand_n lib_n de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la &_o malis_fw-la germ._n brent_n kemn_v cent._n magdeburg_n answer_n the_o reason_n be_v just_a on_o the_o catholic_n part_n for_o each_o on_o of_o the_o sectary_n condenne_v on_o another_o bible_n therefore_o just_o they_o may_v be_v condemn_v of_o the_o catholic_n translation_n each_o heretic_n condemn_v one_o another_o bible_n for_o evil_a translation_n for_o luther_n condemn_v the_o zwinglian_o and_o contrariwyse_o the_o zwinglians_n the_o lutheran_n likewise_o beza_n castalion_n and_o likewise_o castalion_n beza_n etc._n etc._n lykwyse_o do_v not_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o condenne_v his_o 1._o traslation_n &_o make_v a_o new_a translation_n &_o publish_v it_o by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n as_o witness_v calu._n turc_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 7._o wherefore_o not_o unjust_o be_v they_o condemn_v of_o we_o catholic_n from_o who_o your_o grandfather_n luther_n have_v receive_v the_o true_a copy_n who_o have_v corrupt_v they_o in_o mutilate_v and_o adulterate_v the_o whole_a text_n from_o his_o original_n scripture_n it_o be_v the_o protestant_n reformation_n to_o deny_v many_o book_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o what_o reformation_n be_v it_o to_o take_v away_o from_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n to_o bias_n judith_n the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n ecclesiastes_n and_o the_o machaby_n which_o book_n be_v receive_v for_o canon_n scripture_n of_o the_o famous_a and_o ancient_a counsel_n as_o carthage_n florence_n and_o trent_n of_o which_o sacred_a book_n innocent_a the_o 1_o make_v mention_n of_o they_o for_o canon_n scripture_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la exuperant_fw-la likewise_o gelatius_n in_o his_o counsel_n of_o seventy_o bishop_n likewise_o the_o father_n who_o cyte_v these_o book_n for_o divine_a scripture_n as_o at_o length_n be_v rehearse_v a_o sixth_o senens_fw-la lib_n 8._o s._n bibliothecae_fw-la if_o this_o be_v your_o reformation_n let_v the_o world_n be_v judge_v to_o blot_v out_o s_o james_n epistle_n call_v it_o a_o straw-epistle_n which_o contrariwise_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o caluinist_n lykwyse_o to_o call_v in_o doubt_n the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n peter_n with_o the_o first_o epistle_n and_o the_o second_o of_o s._n john_n jude_n &_o the_o apocalyps_n which_o place_n be_v ever_o in_o authority_n with_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n likewise_o in_o add_v to_o the_o scripture_n they_o think_v no_o sin_n for_o when_o s._n paul_n rom._n 3._o v._n 22._o say_v that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v unto_o all_o and_o upon_o all_o that_o believe_v the_o reform_a traslation_n add_v this_o word_n only_o as_o it_o be_v that_o by_o only_a faith_n the_o christian_a righteousness_n fall_v to_o we_o to_o exclude_v all_o good_a work_n likewise_o be_v it_o a_o honest_a translation_n of_o the_o zwinglians_n in_o turingne_n to_o change_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n matth._n 26._o marc._n 14._o luc._n 22._o 1._o cor_fw-la 11._o where_o it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n to_o change_v it_o &_o say_v this_o signifi_v my_o body_n &_o blood_n for_o which_o cause_n of_o trumpery_n the_o heretic_n can_v suffer_v the_o roman_a catholic_a byble_n and_o therefore_o just_o may_v the_o catholic_n say_v
to_o they_o just_o with_o s._n aug._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr symb._n c._n 10._o all_o congregation_n &_o heresy_n be_v a_o concubine_n and_o a_o whore_n who_o can_v blush_v and_o be_v ashamed_a as_o experience_n teach_v do_v not_o luther_n translate_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o german_a tongue_n but_o so_o wicked_a &_o pernicious_a corrupt_a and_o erroneous_a that_o it_o minister_v sedition_n mutination_n and_o rebellion_n of_o the_o people_n against_o the_o high_a power_n by_o this_o simple_a woman_n take_v on_o they_o the_o reading_z of_o the_o scripture_n and_o their_o note_n with_o such_o fervour_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o contempt_n of_o all_o learned_a man_n to_o preach_v and_o exhort_v public_o contrary_a to_o the_o inhibition_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o ought_v to_o keep_v silence_n &_o hold_v their_o peace_n where_o man_n be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n do_v not_o the_o sighing-puritane-sister_n of_o edin_n borough_n and_o other_o city_n in_o scotland_n after_o this_o ghospel_v conversation_n at_o four_o a_o clock_n when_o they_o be_v rypest_n of_o understanding_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n i_o hope_v it_o fall_v to_o they_o by_o ignorance_n and_o blindness_n of_o mind_n so_o long_o as_o they_o read_v that_o bible_n babble_n as_o be_v prophesy_v of_o peters-wyfe_n who_o will_v never_o mend_v but_o ever_o grow_v worse_o and_o wòrse_n for_o be_v not_o their_o rabbi_n in_o that_o same_o conformity_n with_o the_o old_a heretic_n about_o the_o scripture_n who_o be_v condemn_v of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o deprave_v the_o scripture_n &_o deny_v of_o sundry_a book_n as_o the_o aebionits_n who_o deny_v s._n paul_n epistle_n as_o witness_v s._n iren._n l._n 1_o cap_n 26._o &_o s._n epiph._n haeres_fw-la 3_o likewise_o be_v not_o the_o manichean_o damn_v for_o deny_v the_o gospel_n of_o s_o m●tthew_n as_o witness_v s._n aug._n lib._n 33._o contra_fw-la faust_n cap._n 3_o &_o 7._o likewise_o the_o alogian_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o deny_v of_o s_n johns_n evangelist_n and_o his_o apocalyps_n s._n aug_n haer._n 30_o likewise_o the_o marcionist_n and_o arian_n for_o deny_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n to_o be_v s._n paul_n as_o witness_v tertul._n de_fw-fr praesc_fw-la iten_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 29._o epiph._n haer._n 41._o s._n hier._n in_o praef_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la tit._n or_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v the_o modern_a rabbin_n with_o the_o old_a heretic_n concern_v the_o scripture_n to_o repudiat_fw-la &_o reject_v the_o book_n of_o moses_n here_o upon_o be_v luther_n doctrine_n serm._n de_fw-fr moyse_n say_v let_v not_o moses_n be_v thrust_v on_o we_o we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n will_v neither_o regard_n nor_o hear_v he_o again_o idem_fw-la luther_n call_v the_o old_a testament_n no_o word_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o christian_n for_o moses_n appertain_v nothing_o to_o us._n again_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr decem_fw-la praec_fw-la &_o lib._n 2._o cont_n rusticos_fw-la thou_o seditious_a preacher_n affirm_v say_v he_o that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v preacher_n i_o say_v not_o to_o i_o but_o to_o the_o jew_n preach_v thy_o moses_n not_o a_o title_n or_o jot_n of_o moses_n belong_v to_o we_o yea_o not_o the_o law_n concern_v we_o but_o the_o gospel_n yea_o not_o the_o ten_o commandment_n belong_v to_o us._n likewise_o luther_n serm._n de_fw-fr phar._n &_o publ_n &_o in_o proaem_n novi_fw-la testam_fw-la not_o unfit_o do_v i_o admonish_v the_o reader_n in_o my_o prologue_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o they_o shall_v abolish_v this_o opinion_n to_o be_v four_o ghospell_n for_o i_o have_v say_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n john_n be_v most_o acceptable_a and_o true_a likewise_o he_o say_v in_o assert_v in_o prologo_fw-la the_o bible_n buble-bable_n together_o with_o the_o scripture_n be_v nothing_o but_o fable_n likewise_o ochinus_n deny_v the_o whole_a new_a testament_n jacob_n carion_n in_o chron._n a_o 1556._o pag._n 151_o print_v at_o basil_n and_o lykwyse_o ochin_n lib._n 2._o dial_n pag_n 154._o 155._o 156._o say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v no_o more_o they_o the_o s_n ●●_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o he_o subscrybe_v cal_n tax_v the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n lib_n 4._o inst_z cap._n 8_o §_o 4._o saying_n if_o they_o be_v apostle_n let_v they_o not_o babble_n what_o they_o lift_v likewise_o calu._n in_o john_n cap._n 19_o v._n 23.24_o say_v that_o the_o evangelist_n wrest_v allegation_n and_o depart_v from_o the_o right_a meaning_n of_o they_o in_o cap._n 2._o matth._n v._o 18._o &_o in_o 3._o matth._n v._o 13_o &_o in_o 5._o cap._n matth._n v._n 17._o caluin_n accuse_v they_o to_o speak_v a_o brupt_o many_o sentence_n in_o their_o write_n &_o to_o term_v thing_n improper_o and_o to_o use_v many_o improper_a word_n whereupon_o caluin_n say_v that_o he_o can_v never_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o s._n johns_n evangelist_n be_v ever_o he_o to_o this_o effect_n be_v not_o these_o book_n call_v apochrypha_n in_fw-la summa_fw-la the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o thousand_o error_n for_o say_v not_o broughton_n in_o his_o advertisement_n to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o bible_n a_fw-mi 1604._o that_o the_o whole_a original_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v pervert_v in_o above_o 8._o hundrith_n and_o 8._o place_n and_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o inferior_a to_o the_o turkish_a koran_n likewise_o in_o hampton_n conference_n pag._n 45_o etc._n etc._n the_o inglish_n byble_n be_v evil_o translate_v altogether_o and_o they_o of_o geneva_n the_o worst_a of_o all_o they_o contain_v partial_a untruth_n and_o be_v full_a of_o seditious_a note_n to_o much_o intend_v to_o mutiny_n and_o rebellion_n allow_v dissobedience_n to_o king_n and_o full_a of_o tax_v of_o king_n objection_n long_a since_o of_o some_o father_n some_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v put_v in_o doubt_n as_o judith_n toby_n wisdom_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o second_o of_o s._n peter_n jude_n apocalyps_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o with_o we_o also_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o doubt_v of_o they_o answer_n the_o sequel_n be_v nothing_o for_o albeit_o thomas_n do_v once_o doubt_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v ever_o doubt_v and_o albeit_o there_o be_v no_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o wall_v with_o the_o apostolical_a authority_n and_o tradition_n yetnotwithstanding_a in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v suspect_v and_o doubt_v while_o by_o little_a and_o little_a by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n thing_n be_v make_v more_o clear_a so_o that_o these_o book_n which_o before_o have_v be_v doubt_v of_o have_v now_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n abtayn_v divyne_a authority_n and_o so_o consequente_o they_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v doubt_v objection_n the_o counsel_n of_o laodice_n omit_v and_o lean_v out_o those_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n ergo_fw-la wat_fw-mi the_o counsel_n have_v not_o acknowledge_v neither_o we_o acknowledge_v for_o cannon_n scripture_n answer_n ideny_n the_o consequence_n for_o the_o father_n in_o that_o counsel_n have_v not_o reject_v these_o book_n as_o not_o holy_a neither_o canonical_a but_o they_o have_v not_o numerate_v they_o among_o those_o book_n which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n because_o of_o the_o convert_a jew_n who_o almost_o live_v judaize_v of_o who_o phrygia_n be_v full_a from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a bishop_n in_o that_o counsel_n will_v not_o attempt_v to_o read_v those_o book_n in_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n second_o if_o no_o book_n be_v canonical_a but_o these_o which_o be_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n the_o new_a testament_n shall_v be_v ieiect_v for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o canon_n obiecaion_n gregorius_n lib._n 19_o mor._n cap._n 17._o as_o concern_v these_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n we_o do_v not_o speak_v uncivil_o if_o by_o beside_o the_o canonical_a book_n which_o be_v make_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v produce_v any_o testimony_n ergo_fw-la these_o book_n be_v not_o canonical_a answer_n he_o deny_v not_o these_o book_n to_o be_v holy_a which_o be_v rehearse_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n see_v it_o can_v not_o be_v hide_v and_o unknown_a to_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n that_o 200._o year_n before_o bless_a innocent_a pope_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o maccabee_n as_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o which_o these_o book_n be_v not_o number_v neither_o
be_v they_o in_o like_a authority_n with_o the_o jew_n whih_o after_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v authorise_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o authentical_a scripture_n upon_o which_o authority_n s._n austen_n fear_v not_o to_o confirm_v the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n with_o the_o church_n objection_n long_a since_o of_o many_o it_o be_v doubt_v of_o the_o epystle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o second_o of_o s_o peter_n the_o last_o of_o daniel_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o for_o this_o doubt_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v adjudge_v heretic_n who_o now_o either_o reject_v they_o or_o put_v they_o in_o doubt_n answer_n the_o consequent_a be_v deny_v because_o the_o like_a raeson_n shall_v follow_v in_o the_o like_o doubt_n whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v again_o who_o heretic_n have_v baptize_v which_o s._n cyprian_n with_o some_o other_o have_v thought_n meet_v to_o be_v do_v and_o whether_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v of_o christian_n yea_o also_o who_o believe_v of_o the_o gen_n till_v whereupon_o the_o counsel_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v move_v about_o these_o heresy_n lykwyse_o whether_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o euage_o do_v appertayn_v to_o the_o gentile_n or_o to_o the_o jew_n only_o as_o be_v dispute_v in_o the_o act._n apost_n cap._n 11_o for_o albeit_o the_o church_n retain_v all_o time_n the_o same_o one_o faith_n yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o progress_n of_o time_n and_o occasion_n as_o the_o church_n increase_v in_o her_o number_n so_o thing_n pertinent_a to_o faith_n may_v be_v amplify_v and_o make_v more_o ample_a than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n for_o the_o church_n at_o no_o time_n ever_o receive_v for_o a_o opinion_n of_o faith_n that_o which_o before_o she_o have_v once_o reject_v now_o those_o book_n once_o censure_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a more_o to_o doubt_v of_o they_o and_o be_v in_o as_o great_a authority_n and_o veneration_n as_o the_o other_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v for_o example_n for_o as_o a_o piece_n of_o gold_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v suspect_v to_o be_v false_a and_o conterfeyt_v yet_o if_o afterward_o it_o be_v try_v by_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o goldsmyth_n and_o find_v sufficient_a and_o approve_v of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o whole_a people_n &_o go_v currant_n as_o other_o quoin_v and_o be_v no_o less_o worth_n than_o any_o other_o peace_n of_o gold_n which_o be_v never_o suspect_v even_o so_o these_o book_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n qvaestio_n xvii_o of_o tradition_n wherefore_o be_v the_o papist_n so_o simple_a as_o to_o believe_v some_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o call_v tradition_n calu._n lib_n 4._o inst_z cap._n 8._o §_o 8._o brent_n in_o prolog_n kemnit_fw-la in_o exam_n conc._n trident._n answer_n it_o may_v be_v demand_v in_o like_a manner_n wherefore_o caluin_n lib_n 4._o inst_z cap._n 3._o §_o 19_o allow_v and_o commend_v tradition_n for_o in_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n he_o command_v as_o a_o precept_n the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n yet_o notwithstanding_o see_v there_o be_v no_o commandment_n extant_a in_o the_o scripture_n he_o himself_o protest_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a as_o his_o own_o word_n record_n albeit_o say_v he_o there_o be_v no_o commandment_n extant_a for_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n yet_o we_o do_v see_v it_o to_o be_v in_o perpètuall_a use_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o that_o same_o diligent_a observation_n of_o they_o aught_o to_o be_v to_o we_o as_o a_o commandment_n so_o that_o caluin_n who_o before_o deny_v tradition_n do_v allow_v of_o they_o as_o necessary_a in_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o ministry_n who_o for_o entrance_n we_o see_v lead_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o contradiction_n for_o i_o say_v that_o not_o only_o these_o thing_n which_o plain_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v but_o also_o many_o tradition_n and_o observation_n which_o have_v flow_v and_o come_v from_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n which_o be_v to_o be_v retain_v necessary_a as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o write_a word_n itself_o because_o it_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o have_v delyver_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v for_o in_o the_o 16_o of_o s._n john_n christ_n say_v i_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o say_v to_o you_o but_o you_o can_v bear_v they_o now_o in_o which_o word_n he_o signifi_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v necessary_a and_o needful_a to_o be_v know_v to_o the_o apostle_n which_o thing_n out_o of_o doubt_n he_o make_v know_v when_o he_o appear_v to_o they_o the_o forty_o day_n speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n his_o church_n and_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o what_o the_o apostle_n have_v hear_v out_o of_o doubt_n they_o have_v delyver_v to_o the_o church_n for_o her_o cause_n these_o be_v communicate_v of_o our_o lord_n to_o they_o which_o although_o they_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o by_o tradition_n be_v delyver_v of_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v to_o the_o thess_n epist_n 2._o cap._n 2_o v._n 14._o stand_v and_o hold_v fast_o say_v he_o the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v receive_v whether_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n delyver_v to_o you_o whether_o by_o the_o preach_a viva_fw-la voce_fw-la or_o by_o a_o epistle_n write_v to_o you_o which_o place_n these_o venerable_a father_n expounde_n of_o tradition_n as_o s._n basil_n lib._n de_fw-fr s._n s._n chry._n oecom_v theoph._n and_o s._n aug._n epist_n 174._o to_o that_o now_o say_v he_o which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v it_o fall_v so_o that_o homoousion_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o write_a word_n and_o yet_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n be_v defend_v likewise_o the_o father_n be_v call_v unbegotten_a which_o be_v not_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o symbol_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v by_o tradition_n &_o not_o by_o the_o write_a word_n likewise_o the_o observance_n of_o sondy_n for_o the_o sabbath_n the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n ●he_v receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n fast_v and_o s_n luke_n acknowledge_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n what_o he_o have_v write_v in_o his_o euange_o for_o if_o you_o reject_v tradition_n why_o not_o also_o the_o whole_a write_v scripture_n by_o what_o reason_n be_v there_o only_o four_o evangelist_n and_o no_o more_o and_o wherefore_o be_v they_o receive_v that_o never_o see_v christ_n and_o these_o evangelist_n reject_v who_o do_v see_v hear_v and_o be_v conversant_a with_o he_o as_o nicodem_n s._n thomas_n thaddeus_n s._n peter_n bartholomewe_n and_o other_o who_o have_v wrytren_a euangelye_v and_o yet_o their_o write_a euangelye_n be_v reject_v and_o these_o other_o four_o be_v receive_v who_o never_o do_v see_v christ_n and_o with_o we_o you_o believe_v they_o which_o be_v not_o express_v by_o any_o write_a word_n but_o only_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a evangelist_n by_o tradition_n what_o can_v be_v more_o say_v for_o verification_n of_o the_o truth_n than_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o thes_n cap._n 2._o v._n 14._o which_o word_n all_o tend_v for_o the_o commendation_n of_o our_o belief_n of_o which_o s_n basil_n l._n de_fw-fr s._n s._n cap._n 29._o i_o account_v it_o apostolical_a to_o continue_v and_o believe_v firm_o the_o unwriten_a word_n to_o who_o all_o the_o father_n be_v conformable_a for_o when_o the_o old_a heretic_n as_o gnostes_n martion_n cerdone_n arius_n eunomius_n aerius_n nestorius_n etc._n etc._n oppose_v themselves_o against_o tradition_n disdain_v and_o deny_v they_o be_v with_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n condemn_v as_o heretic_n as_o witness_v iraen_n lib._n 3._o tert._n the_o prescript_n s._n basil_n lib._n de_fw-fr s._n s._n cap._n 27._o epiph._n haer._n 53._o s._n aug._n lib._n 5._o cont_n maxim_n now_o brother_n asill_n what_o can_v be_v deny_v against_o tradition_n what_o argument_n have_v you_o for_o your_o defence_n for_o you_o accept_v no_o scripture_n as_o canonical_a ergo_fw-la you_o must_v prove_v scripture_n by_o tradition_n and_o the_o other_o scripture_n which_o you_o reject_v be_v name_v apochrypha_n and_o in_o so_o do_v you_o must_v allow_v tradition_n and_o so_o on_o every_o side_n tradition_n convince_v you_o and_o yet_o you_o will_v be_v oppugner_n and_o denier_n of_o tradition_n i_o demand_v this_o if_o you_o be_v to_o convince_v any_o man_n of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n what_o argument_n will_v you_o use_v to_o convince_v he_o as_o for_o example_n luther_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n decree_v to_o reject_v the_o epistle_n
if_o we_o read_v our_o service_n &_o prayer_n in_o latin_a the_o vulgar_a people_n understand_v it_o not_o and_o so_o there_o be_v no_o more_o fruit_n of_o the_o hear_n of_o it_o then_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v speak_v to_o the_o wall_n answer_n the_o apostle_n say_v contain_v a_o threefold_a prayer_n to_o wit_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o mind_n to_o which_o these_o three_o concur_v the_o tongue_n the_o will_n and_o understanding_n therefore_o if_o any_o pray_v with_o his_o mouth_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n he_o pray_v with_o mouth_n and_o will_n if_o he_o do_v it_o for_o god_n cause_n but_o his_o mind_n be_v without_o fruit_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o understande_v not_o because_o what_o he_o pray_v he_o understande_v not_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n his_o prayer_n be_v not_o without_o fruit_n for_o it_o be_v meritorious_a to_o he_o that_o pray_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n albeit_o it_o be_v destitute_a of_o that_o fruit_n which_o man_n conceive_v by_o understanding_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n strive_v to_o declare_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n which_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n &_o of_o the_o word_n of_o prayer_n to_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o tongue_n for_o see_v daily_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a increase_v both_o among_o ethnic_n &_o jew_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o requisite_a to_o the_o faithful_a to_o speak_v before_o they_o with_o many_o tongue_n but_o than_o it_o be_v their_o part_n to_o speak_v with_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o which_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o scripture_n but_o now_o when_o man_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o with_o continual_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n what_o service_n or_o prayer_n be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o therefore_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v divyne_v service_n be_v do_v in_o a_o vulgar_a tongue_n see_v it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o the_o vulgar_a what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o mass_n or_o song_n of_o the_o church_n whilst_o they_o comforme_v their_o gesture_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o priest_n now_o to_o stand_v now_o to_o bow_v their_o kne_v now_o to_o leave_v up_o their_o hand_n and_o eye_n now_o to_o knok_fw-mi on_o their_o briest_n &_o c_o but_o to_o the_o argument_n which_o the_o heretic_n propound_v against_o the_o mass_n and_o church_n matin_n we_o answer_v that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o a_o prophet_n preacher_n or_o doctor_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n as_o hierome_n &_o austen_n witness_n in_o this_o place_n second_o that_o albeit_o the_o lay-man_n understand_v not_o the_o word_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o understand_v all_o the_o mystery_n by_o preach_v therefore_o the_o hear_n of_o mass_n and_o matine_n and_o even_o song_n be_v not_o unprofitable_a etc._n etc._n howbeit_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o word_n for_o these_o reason_n because_o in_o the_o divyne_a service_n of_o the_o church_n usual_o be_v read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v to_o we_o and_o pour_v some_o grace_n in_o our_o heart_n &_o tongue_n to_o express_v our_o affection_n and_o love_n towards_o god_n three_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o mass_n or_o collect_v be_v common_a minister_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o therefore_o all_o hearer_n of_o god_n service_n shall_v repose_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o she_o more_o please_v god_n &_o be_v more_o acceptable_a to_o he_o as_o a_o most_o belove_a spouse_n to_o her_o husband_n than_o the_o faith_n of_o any_o private_a man_n four_o the_o end_n of_o mass_n and_o divyne_a service_n be_v common_a to_o all_o whether_o he_o understand_v or_o no_o for_o the_o end_n of_o the_o mass_n &_o the_o church_n intention_n be_v know_v to_o all_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o edification_n of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n marie_n &_o all_o his_o saint_n and_o therefore_o it_o suffice_v that_o we_o have_v divyne_a service_n in_o latin_a see_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o three_o chief_a tongue_n which_o christ_n sanctify_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o that_o we_o appertain_v to_o the_o latin_a church_n etc._n etc._n qvaestio_n xx._n of_o the_o aue_fw-la maria._n how_o do_v the_o simple_a papist_n think_v that_o they_o pray_v when_o they_o rehearse_v the_o angelical_a salutation_n say_v aue_fw-la maria_fw-la aue_fw-la maria._n caluin_n in_o harm_n euang._n etc._n etc._n answer_n the_o catholic_n papist_n commit_v no_o foolishness_n while_o they_o repeat_v the_o angelical_a salutation_n as_o a_o true_a prayer_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o prayer_n consist_v in_o two_o part_n the_o on_o be_v in_o give_v of_o thanks_o and_o the_o other_o in_o prayer_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o affect_v folly_n or_o superstition_n the_o mayor_n be_v evident_a because_o there_o be_v many_o psalm_n of_o david_n that_o be_v only_a action_n of_o thanks_n and_o yet_o be_v nomber_v among_o ecclesiastical_a prayer_n also_o they_o be_v number_v by_o their_o own_o judgement_n in_o the_o psalmist_n &_o in_o this_o manner_n be_v paul_n and_o sylas_n at_o midnight_n praise_v and_o pray_v our_o lord_n act._n 16._o v._n 25._o for_o the_o petition_n &_o desire_n be_v include_v in_o the_o prayer_n itself_o moreover_o the_o minor_a be_v evident_a first_o because_o while_o we_o repeat_v that_o prayer_n we_o commemorate_fw-la the_o benefit_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o thanks_n give_v therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v and_o adjudge_v for_o a_o prayer_n second_o it_o be_v a_o prayer_n implicit_a by_o way_n of_o insinuation_n as_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o leprous-man_n to_o christ_n say_v lord_n if_o thou_o will_v thou_o can_v make_v i_o clean_o matth._n 8_o five_o 2._o to_o who_o christ_n answer_v condiscend_v to_o his_o inward_a desire_n and_o private_a prayer_n say_v i_o will_v be_v thou_o clean_a even_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n whyl_v we_o repeat_v this_o salutation_n we_o praythe_a mother_n of_o god_n to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o we_o implicit_o three_o the_o holy_a church_n have_v put_v to_o this_o a_o formal_a and_o express_a prayer_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o salutation_n say_v holy_a mother_n of_o god_n pray_v for_o we_o now_o and_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o death_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o true_a prayer_n howsoever_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o bless_a mother_n whisper_z and_o murmur_v against_o she_o objection_n if_o the_o angelical_a salutation_n be_v allow_v of_o the_o catholic_n for_o a_o prayer_n ergo_fw-la when_o the_o angel_n salute_v the_o virgin_n he_o pray_v to_o she_o answer_n the_o sequel_n be_v absurd_a for_o altough_o he_o salute_v she_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o he_o pray_v to_o she_o as_o when_o the_o action_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v of_o a_o diverse_a intention_n &_o end_n it_o acquire_v a_o diverse_a name_n and_o action_n according_a to_o philosophical_a axiom_n saying_n actus_fw-la accepit_fw-la speciem_fw-la ab_fw-la obiecto_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o deed_n take_v his_o form_n of_o the_o object_n as_o for_o example_n when_o any_o man_n shall_v give_v a_o alm_n for_o the_o succour_n of_o his_o nyghbour_n this_o intention_n and_o end_n of_o his_o work_n be_v observe_v of_o the_o form_n of_o the_o object_n in_o that_o he_o be_v his_o nyghbour_n &_o poor_a and_o in_o the_o other_o when_o any_o man_n shall_v give_v a_o alm_n to_o deceive_v his_o nyghbour_n the_o first_o be_v meritorious_a but_o in_o the_o second_o he_o demerit_n even_o so_o the_o intention_n and_o end_n of_o the_o angel_n salutation_n it_o be_v congratulatory_a in_o that_o she_o be_v choose_v to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o convince_v in_o this_o to_o have_v pray_v to_o she_o but_o by_o the_o same_o axiom_n to_o have_v salute_v she_o objection_n the_o papist_n usurp_v a_o other_o office_n which_o be_v wrong_n while_o they_o salut_v the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n they_o usurp_v the_o office_n of_o the_o angel_n therefore_o they_o sin_n in_o make_v this_o salutation_n which_o be_v not_o proper_a for_o they_o to_o do_v but_o the_o angel_n answer_n i_o deny_v the_o usurp_n of_o a_o other_o office_n this_o be_v invent_v of_o caluin_n own_o head_n but_o athan._n in_o euamgel_n de_fw-fr dei_fw-la para_fw-it say_v that_o all_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o celestial_a hierarchy_n do_v incessant_o sing_v in_o heaven_n this_o glorious_a and_o unspeakable_a hymn_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o follow_v that_o not_o only_o this_o
accept_v and_o condescend_v to_o our_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n and_o reprobation_n see_v by_o they_o the_o divyne_a mercy_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n do_v chief_o shine_v claer_fw-mi and_o be_v make_v manifest_a caluin_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 21._o &_o 23._o piscat_fw-la count_v scaff_n etc._n etc._n answer_n we_o catholic_n accurse_v your_o wicked_a doctrine_n who_o affirm_v that_o god_n not_o only_o from_o eternity_n have_v define_v and_o preordain_v all_o thing_n in_o particular_a both_o good_a and_o evil_a before_o the_o forseen_v determination_n of_o freewill_n but_o also_o that_o our_o first_o parent_n have_v fall_v by_o the_o eternal_a ordination_n of_o god_n and_o that_o that_o most_o clement_a lord_n who_o nature_n be_v goodness_n have_v no_o respect_n to_o our_o good_a or_o evil_a have_v decree_v from_o eternity_n to_o create_v some_o to_o life_n some_o to_o death_n only_o that_o in_o they_o he_o may_v declare_v his_o justice_n and_o in_o other_o his_o mercy_n so_o that_o to_o one_o of_o those_o end_n every_o one_o be_v create_v &_o this_o they_o call_v predestination_n and_o therefore_o lest_o i_o shall_v seem_v to_o forge_v or_o counterfeit_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o verity_n it_o be_v requisite_a to_o produce_v the_o word_n of_o their_o own_o rabbin_n to_o this_o purpose_n cal._n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 23._o §_o 7._o no_o man_n can_v be_v iustify_v say_v he_o while_o god_n have_v forseen_v what_o progress_n he_o be_v to_o have_v that_o make_v he_o and_o therefore_o god_n have_v forseen_v because_o by_o his_o own_o decree_n he_o have_v dispose_v what_o he_o have_v forseen_v etc._n etc._n for_o it_o do_v appertayn_a to_o his_o wisdom_n to_o foresee_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o likewise_o it_o appertain_v to_o his_o power_n to_o rule_v and_o moderate_v all_o thing_n with_o his_o hand_n moreover_o ibidem_fw-la he_o say_v it_o be_v decree_v of_o god_n that_o adam_n shall_v sin_v morover_n that_o it_o shall_v seem_v absurd_a to_o any_o that_o which_o i_o say_v not_o only_a god_n to_o have_v forseen_v the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o whole_a posterity_n in_o they_o but_o also_o to_o have_v dispose_v it_o so_o by_o his_o decree_n and_o will_v and_o so_o we_o call_v predestination_n the_o eternal_a decree_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v declare_v with_o himself_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v of_o every_o man_n for_o all_o be_v not_o create_v to_o alike_o condition_n but_o some_o be_v preordinate_a to_o life_n and_o other_o to_o eternal_a death_n &_o therefore_o whether_o of_o those_o end_n he_o happen_v on_o we_o say_v that_o to_o that_o end_n he_o be_v predestinat_a calu._n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 21._o §_o 5._o to_o justify_v caluin_n blasphemy_n caluin_n and_o piscatores_fw-la blasphemy_n burst_v out_o piscator_fw-la a_o caluinist_n in_o his_o treatise_n against_o scaffman_n print_v in_o lai_n in_o holl._n 1610._o pag._n 26._o god_n so_o create_v our_o first_o parent_n say_v he_o that_o indeed_o they_o shall_v sin_v for_o so_o much_o as_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n that_o he_o may_v obtain_v his_o own_o first_o end_n which_o be_v in_o the_o declare_v and_o show_v his_o mercy_n in_o the_o salvation_n of_o some_o and_o in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o righteousness_n with_o just_a condemnation_n of_o other_o thus_o he_o but_o as_o concern_v this_o predestination_n to_o death_n caluin_n say_v sup_v who_o god_n give_v over_o to_o damnation_n these_o true_o by_o his_o equity_n and_o righteousness_n and_o in_o his_o incomprehensible_a judgement_n we_o affirm_v they_o from_o the_o entrance_n to_o life_n to_o be_v secude_v and_o stop_v and_o likewise_o even_o as_o god_n with_o vocation_n and_o justification_n do_v seal_v his_o own_o elect_a that_o they_o can_v fall_v even_o so_o the_o reprobat_fw-la by_o exclude_v they_o from_o knowledge_n &_o notice_n of_o his_o vocation_n or_o from_o the_o sanctification_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o his_o decree_n and_o predestination_n the_o which_o he_o declare_v and_o manifest_a by_o justice_n lib._n 3_o cap._n 21._o §_o 7._o morover_n he_o teach_v in_o another_o place_n that_o god_n drave_v the_o reprobate_a by_o force_n and_o constrain_v they_o of_o necessity_n to_o the_o do_v of_o wickedness_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o no_o mean_n can_v they_o be_v excuse_v either_o from_o sin_n or_o from_o the_o punishment_n of_o divine_a justice_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o reprobate_n will_v be_v think_v excusable_a in_o sin_v because_o they_o can_v eshew_v the_o necessity_n of_o sin_n see_v this_o manner_n of_o necessity_n be_v lay_v on_o they_o by_o the_o ordination_n of_o god_n opinion_n predestination_n constreine_n and_o force_v a_o man_n to_o sin_n after_o caluins_n opinion_n but_o for_o this_o we_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v excuse_v for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o ordination_n of_o god_n by_o which_o they_o complain_v they_o to_o be_v ordain_v or_o destinat_fw-la to_o damnation_n stand_v with_o his_o equity_n to_o we_o the_o cause_n be_v unknown_a but_o that_o equity_n be_v most_o certain_a and_o upright_o with_o he_o lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 23._o §_o 9_o the_o which_o doctrine_n be_v most_o impious_a wicked_a cruel_a and_o blasphemous_a and_o be_v repugnant_a &_o withstand_v the_o holy_a scripture_n right_a reason_n and_o their_o own_o evangelical_a consistory_n of_o tugure_a &_o basil_n who_o have_v reject_v this_o doctrine_n of_o caluin_n concern_v predestination_n anno_fw-la dni_fw-la 1552._o as_o witness_v bol_n cap._n 13._o therefore_o what_o appertain_v to_o the_o evil_a of_o our_o fault_n and_o the_o forward_a action_n of_o a_o sinner_n they_o be_v not_o predefinite_a and_o preordinate_a from_o eternity_n which_o the_o whole_a scripture_n withstand_v as_o psal_n 5._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n love_v no_o iniquity_n neither_o will_v wickedness_n and_o as_o for_o punishment_n and_o eternal_a damnation_n to_o be_v decree_v of_o god_n before_o the_o forseen_v malice_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o creature_n or_o without_o respect_n of_o futur_fw-la sin_n that_o god_n shall_v have_v predestinat_a and_o to_o have_v create_v they_o to_o eternal_a condemnation_n let_v christian_n ear_n abhor_v to_o hear_v such_o doctrine_n to_o which_o the_o scripture_n oppose_v which_o testify_v that_o god_n do_v not_o pull_v out_o the_o sword_n of_o punishment_n god_n punishment_n and_o revenge_n be_v a_o strange_a work_n to_o god_n and_o revenge_n except_o he_o be_v compel_v and_o force_v by_o provoke_v he_o by_o long_a continuance_n in_o sin_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o prophet_n isai_n cap._n 28._o v._n 21._o say_v that_o vengeange_a and_o the_o scourge_n be_v call_v a_o unusual_a and_o a_o strange_a work_n and_o cap._n 1._o v._n 24._o as_o it_o be_v he_o complain_v say_v by_o a_o interjection_n ah_o ah_o i_o will_v case_v i_o of_o my_o enemy_n &_o i_o will_v revenge_v i_o on_o my_o foe_n which_o interjection_n heu_n many_o interpret_v it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v against_o his_o will_n and_o that_o he_o express_v it_o with_o sorrow_n that_o force_n urge_v he_o contrary_a to_o his_o will_n to_o vengeance_n and_o punishment_n who_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v that_o his_o mercy_n &_o not_o his_o justice_n may_v be_v declare_v will_n god_n be_v force_v to_o punish_v man_n against_o his_o will_n for_o it_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o he_o to_o have_v mercy_n and_o to_o spare_v then_o to_o punish_v but_o revenge_n be_v a_o strange_a work_n to_o he_o and_o contrary_n to_o his_o nature_n to_o be_v a_o punisher_n be_v not_o this_o full_o express_v in_o gen._n 6._o how_o he_o be_v force_v when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v inward_o touch_v with_o dolour_n of_o hart_n and_o say_v i_o will_v destroy_v man_n who_o i_o have_v create_v likewise_o ezech._n 18._o v._o 23._o be_v my_o will_n the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a say_v the_o lord_n god_n likewise_o sap._n 1._o god_n make_v not_o death_n neither_o rejoice_v in_o the_o perdition_n of_o the_o live_n but_o by_o the_o equity_n of_o his_o justice_n when_o sinner_n convertes_o not_o he_o shall_v rejoice_v exceed_o in_o the_o reprobation_n of_o sinner_n for_o the_o ostentation_n of_o his_o justice_n for_o his_o work_n of_o predestination_n be_v good_a &_o be_v without_o any_o prevision_n or_o foresight_n of_o man_n demerit_n or_o original_a sin_n who_o from_o eternity_n have_v not_o decree_v to_o determinate_a constrain_v force_n move_v or_o impel_v the_o will_n of_o any_o to_o wickedness_n and_o sin_n moreover_o if_o the_o angel_n and_o man_n from_o eternity_n be_v predestinate_v to_o reprobation_n to_o the_o only_a ostentation_n of_o god_n divyne_a justice_n they_o have_v fall_v into_o a_o more_o miserable_a condition_n than_o all_o the_o brute_n beast_n of_o the_o world_n be_v angel_n and_o man_n be_v create_v to_o a_o more_o miserable_a condition_n
than_o beast_n be_v the_o which_o god_n have_v not_o create_v to_o misery_n farelesse_a to_o eternal_a condemnation_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o god_n shall_v first_o be_v a_o revenger_n before_o man_n be_v a_o sinner_n the_o which_o s._n austen_n every_o where_o reclaim_v that_o it_o do_v repugn_v the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n and_o in_o so_o do_v god_n shall_v be_v more_o cruel_a than_o the_o wild_a bear_v and_o lion_n for_o there_o be_v no_o beast_n so_o sovadge_a who_o do_v intend_v to_o procread_v their_o birth_n and_o whelp_n to_o a_o extreme_a misery_n other_o be_v none_o that_o do_v not_o nourish_v and_o promote_v what_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o perfection_n and_o to_o the_o contrary_a god_n shall_v be_v more_o unnatural_a than_o the_o brut_v beast_n after_o the_o doctrine_n of_o caluins_n theology_n i_o can_v see_v by_o what_o reason_n man_n can_v promise_v &_o assure_v their_o soul_n whether_o to_o presume_v of_o their_o salvation_n or_o to_o dispayer_n in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n how_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o our_o liberty_n and_o will_n to_o persevere_v in_o good_a thing_n and_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v if_o predestination_n without_o frewill_n good_a work_n and_o perseverance_n make_v a_o consummation_n what_o have_v christ_n say_v in_o vain_a matth._n 19_o if_o thou_o wil●_n enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n again_o he_o that_o persever_v to_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v save_v but_o this_o protestant_a predestination_n annihilate_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o free_v we_o of_o the_o commandment_n and_o of_o the_o virtue_n of_o perseverance_n and_o say_v all_o good_a work_n be_v unprofitable_a moreover_o there_o follow_v another_o absurdity_n that_o if_o god_n of_o his_o own_o will_n without_o forseen_v sin_n predestination_n what_o absurdive_v follow_v the_o protestant_n doctrine_n of_o predestination_n do_v reprobate_a man_n there_o shall_v be_v few_o reprobat_fw-la then_o elect_v which_o be_v false_a as_o matth._n 7._o &_o 22._o by_o the_o consequent_a of_o the_o scripture_n be_v probable_a for_o god_n be_v more_o propense_a and_o ready_a to_o have_v mercy_n then_o to_o condemn_v therefore_o if_o predestination_n consist_v in_o his_o own_o will_n it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v fare_v few_o reprobat_fw-la to_o death_n then_o to_o have_v be_v predestinat_a to_o life_n distinction_n wherein_o consist_v election_n and_o reprobation_n and_o of_o his_o distinction_n for_o it_o be_v a_o idle_a argument_n that_o you_o gather_v of_o predestination_n to_o make_v the_o vindictive_a justice_n of_o god_n to_o shine_v see_v by_o reason_n it_o be_v rather_o obscure_v who_o will_v god_n first_o to_o be_v a_o revenger_n before_o man_n or_o angel_n be_v and_o to_o foresee_v and_o predestinat_a they_o sinner_n before_o they_o be_v creature_n for_o by_o all_o reason_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v first_o produce_v what_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v before_o the_o punishment_n be_v decree_v and_o second_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o punishment_n be_v to_o be_v measure_v according_a to_o the_o fact_n so_o that_o the_o difference_n in_o election_n and_o reprobation_n consist_v in_o this_o distinction_n to_o wit_n that_o immediate_a election_n in_o perfect_a year_n subsist_v in_o his_o prescience_n with_o prevision_n of_o follow_v merit_n presuppose_v cooperate_a grace_n and_o mediate_v knowledge_n and_o in_o child_n by_o prevised_a application_n of_o the_o sacrament_n against_o sin_n original_a reprobation_n be_v by_o apositive_a act_n of_o his_o divyne_a will_n by_o which_o god_n have_v decree_v to_o condemn_v some_o to_o eternal_a punishement_n the_o cause_n be_v give_v meritorious_a of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o reprobate_n to_o wit_n perseverance_n in_o mortal_a sin_n or_o in_o original_n for_o where_o there_o be_v a_o reason_n give_v wherefore_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v prepare_v for_o the_o elect_a before_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v there_o good_a work_n and_o merit_n for_o it_o be_v say_v matth._n 25._o that_o christ_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v say_v reprobation_n forseen_v merit_n and_o demerit_n be_v cause_n of_o election_n &_o reprobation_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n by_o predestination_n from_o eternity_n and_o by_o grace_n in_o the_o present_a possess_v you_o the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o eternity_n adiect_v the_o reason_n wherefore_o not_o only_o it_o be_v give_v to_o they_o to_o possess_v but_o also_o be_v prepare_v from_o the_o beginning_n because_o say_v he_o i_o be_v hungre_n thirsty_a naked_a etc._n etc._n and_o you_o succour_v i_o contrariwise_o to_o the_o reprobat_fw-la go_v from_o i_o accurse_v into_o hell_n fire_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n for_o i_o be_v hungre_n thirsty_a naked_a etc._n etc._n and_o you_o secour_v i_o not_o so_o that_o the_o predestinat_a be_v elect_v to_o glory_n for_o their_o forseen_v merit_n and_o the_o reprobate_n be_v ordain_v to_o hell_n fire_n for_o their_o forseen_v demerit_n whereupon_o be_v the_o common_a maxim_n that_o the_o vulgares_fw-la and_o idiot_n hold_v and_o be_v mantayn_v of_o all_o sectary_n that_o a_o man_n predestinat_a to_o eternal_a life_n howbeit_o he_o do_v evil_a can_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o diveil_n reprobation_n the_o vulgar_n opinion_n of_o predestination_n &_o reprobation_n and_o contrariwyse_o the_o reprobat_fw-la whatsoever_o good_a he_o do_v or_o how_o well_o he_o live_v can_v be_v a_o member_n of_o god_n by_o this_o doctrine_n righteous_a and_o good_a man_n be_v turn_v away_o from_o do_v good_a work_n and_o make_v away_o for_o sin_n and_o all_o vice_n for_o hereby_o a_o man_n shall_v neither_o merit_n nor_o demerit_n see_v this_o paradox_n teach_v a_o infallibility_n that_o the_o predestinat_a can_v do_v no_o evil_a and_o the_o reprobat_fw-la can_v do_v good_a which_o be_v false_a for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o reprobat_fw-la cain_n despair_v of_o the_o divyne_a mercy_n of_o g●d_n for_o which_o he_o be_v damn_v and_o to_o prevent_v he_o of_o reprobation_n he_o say_v genes_n 4._o v._n 6._o wherefore_o be_v thou_o angry_a and_o why_o be_v thy_o countenance_n cast_v down_o if_o thou_o do_v well_o thou_o shall_v be_v reward_v in_o which_o word_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n promiss_v to_o a_o reprobate_a man_n the_o reward_n of_o good_a thing_n if_o he_o will_v work_v they_o but_o the_o protestant_n chief_a design_n be_v to_o extinguish_v all_o power_n and_o will_v to_o work_v any_o good_a thing_n demerit_n the_o protestant_n will_n be_v to_o extinguish_v all_o power_n to_o merit_n or_o demerit_n through_o predestination_n so_o that_o the_o predestinat_a can_v sin_v nor_o the_o reprobate_n can_v merit_v withstand_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o say_v that_o peter_n be_v predestinat_a to_o eternal_a glory_n and_o yet_o commit_v a_o most_o heinous_a sin_n by_o swear_v &_o deny_v our_o lord_n matth._n 26._o who_o before_o he_o confess_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o king_n of_o israel_n matth._n 16_o likewise_o be_v not_o s._n paul_n predestinat_a yet_o he_o himself_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v be_v a_o blasphemer_n a_o persecuter_n and_o a_o wicked_a liver_n which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o reprobation_n except_o you_o will_v say_v that_o a_o blasphemer_n be_v worthy_a of_o a_o eternal_a reward_n than_o be_v he_o a_o blasphemer_n of_o necessity_n or_o then_o be_v he_o a_o member_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o all_o wickedness_n must_v be_v of_o the_o devil_n for_o as_o s._n gregor_n hom._n in_o domin_v 1_o quadrag_n the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a be_v the_o devil_n and_o the_o member_n of_o this_o head_n be_v all_o the_o wicked_a thus_o he_o who_o will_v think_v s._n paul_n to_o be_v predestinate_a and_o s._n peter_n who_o deed_n be_v oppose_v or_o how_o do_v their_o concur_v with_o predestination_n ensue_v see_v as_o they_o say_v the_o predestinate_a can_v sin_v how_o then_o have_v they_o &_o other_o sin_v like_o fool_n assure_v yourselves_o of_o predestination_n and_o eternal_a life_n who_o can_v faill_n no_o more_o than_o christ_n himself_o with_o caluin_n you_o be_v not_o ware_n of_o presumption_n lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 17._o §_o 2._o whilst_o you_o trust_v in_o your_o own_o supposition_n concern_v predestination_n and_o reprobation_n for_o many_o have_v perish_v who_o have_v think_v to_o have_v be_v predestinat_a and_o many_o have_v be_v save_v who_o life_n appear_v to_o other_o reprobate_n objection_n the_o scripture_n say_v rom._n 9_o v._n 11._o when_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o bear_v nor_o have_v do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_a that_o according_a to_o election_n the_o purpose_n of_o god_n shall_v remain_v sure_a not_o of_o work_n but_o by_o he_o that_o call_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o elder_a shall_v serve_v the_o young_a as_o it_o be_v write_v
good_a as_o the_o other_o must_v hold_v of_o god_n eternal_a purpose_n mercy_n and_o election_n that_o he_o be_v prefer_v before_o his_o brother_n which_o be_v elder_a than_o himself_o and_o no_o worse_a than_o himself_o neither_o have_v his_o brother_n esau_n in_o the_o other_o part_n cause_n to_o complayn_n for_o that_o god_n neither_o suffer_v anything_o to_o be_v do_v towards_o he_o that_o his_o sin_n do_v not_o deserve_v for_o although_o god_n elect_v eternal_o and_o give_v his_o first_o grace_n without_o all_o merit_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o reprobate_a nor_o hate_v any_o but_o for_o sin_n or_o the_o for_o sight_n thereof_o therefore_o in_o these_o two_o equal_a person_n god_n call_v the_o one_o unto_o mercy_n and_o leave_v the_o other_o in_o his_o sin_n be_v god_n for_o this_o cause_n injust_a and_o a_o accepter_n of_o person_n the_o apostle_n answer_v that_o god_n be_v not_o just_a nor_o indifferent_a indeed_o so_o to_o use_v the_o matter_n where_o grace_n and_o salvation_n be_v dew_n as_o for_o example_n if_o two_o man_n both_o beleve_v well_o and_o live_v well_o if_o god_n shall_v give_v heaven_n to_o the_o one_o and_o shall_v condemn_v the_o other_o than_o be_v he_o injust_a partial_a and_o forgetful_a of_o his_o promise_n but_o respect_v two_o who_o both_o be_v worthy_a of_o damnation_n as_o all_o be_v before_o they_o be_v call_v to_o mercy_n than_o the_o matter_n stand_v of_o mere_a mercy_n &_o of_o the_o giver_n will_v and_o liberality_n in_o which_o place_n partiality_n have_v no_o place_n as_o for_o example_n two_o malefactor_n be_v condemn_v for_o one_o crime_n the_o prince_n pardon_v the_o one_o and_o lete_v justice_n proceed_v on_o the_o other_o even_o so_o god_n see_v mankind_n in_o a_o general_a condemnation_n because_o of_o sin_n he_o save_v some_o and_o not_o other_o some_o second_o the_o malefactor_n that_o be_v pardon_v can_v attribute_v his_o remission_n to_o his_o own_o deserve_n but_o to_o the_o prince_n mercy_n even_o so_o all_o that_o be_v pardon_v of_o damnation_n be_v delyver_v by_o grace_n through_o the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n &_o merit_n of_o christ_n three_o the_o malefactor_n that_o be_v execute_v can_v challenge_v the_o prince_n that_o he_o be_v not_o pardon_v also_o but_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o have_v his_o deserve_a even_o so_o such_o as_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o state_n of_o damnation_n can_v complain_v because_o they_o have_v their_o deserve_n for_o sin_n four_o the_o stander_n by_o must_v not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v execute_v because_o the_o prince_n will_v not_o pardon_v he_o for_o that_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o his_o offence_n even_o so_o we_o may_v not_o say_v that_o such_o be_v damn_v because_o god_n do_v not_o pardon_v they_o but_o because_o they_o be_v offenderes_fw-la and_o therefore_o deserve_a punishment_n for_o there_o offence_n fyft_o if_o they_o ask_v further_o why_o the_o prince_n pardon_v not_o both_o or_o execute_v not_o both_o the_o reason_n be_v that_o as_o mercy_n be_v a_o goodly_a virtue_n so_o justice_n be_v necessary_a and_o commendable_a even_o so_o that_o some_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o not_o all_o pardon_v &_o other_o some_o pardon_v rather_o than_o all_o condemn_a which_o agree_v to_o god_n justice_n and_o mercy_n which_o virtue_n in_o god_n providence_n towards_o we_o be_v recommend_v moreover_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v why_o joan_n rather_o than_o james_n be_v execute_v and_o why_o be_v james_n rather_o then_o john_n pardon_v see_v they_o both_o be_v equal_a criminal_a the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o hang_v mere_o and_o whole_o upon_o the_o prince_n will_v &_o pleasure_n even_o so_o that_o saul_n shall_v be_v rather_o pardon_v than_o cayphas_n be_v both_o equal_o evil_a it_o depend_v upon_o god_n holy_a will_n by_o which_o many_o unworthy_a person_n obtain_v pardon_n but_o for_o verity_n no_o just_a or_o innocent_a person_n be_v ever_o damn_a qvaestio_n xxiii_o of_o freewill_n why_o do_v the_o papist_n affirm_v man_n to_o have_v in_o their_o action_n freewill_n see_v it_o be_v extinguithe_v by_o sin_n luth._o de_fw-la seruo_fw-la arb_n cal._n l._n 2._o inst_z c._n 2_o §_o 8._o melact_fw-mi in_o loc_n come_v answer_n wherefore_o be_v frewill_n deny_v and_o necessity_n altogether_o induce_v induce_v freewill_n be_v deny_v and_o necessity_n be_v induce_v and_o to_o renovat_fw-la the_o most_o pernicious_a error_n of_o the_o old_a damn_a opinion_n of_o simon_n magus_n bardesance_fw-fr priscillianist_n manicheis_n aboilards_n wicliff_n albanense_n and_o the_o error_n of_o such_o like_a haeresiarche_n repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o manifest_v experience_n right_a reason_n &_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n for_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o after_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n there_o remain_v freewill_n either_o to_o choice_n or_o refuse_v good_a or_o evil_a neither_o be_v he_o force_v by_o concupiscence_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o brut_fw-fr beast_n neither_o be_v he_o compel_v of_o god_n or_o be_v as_o stock_n and_o block_n move_v to_o good_a or_o evil_a but_o freewill_n work_v free_o in_o all_o thing_n requisite_a to_o man_n so_o that_o he_o may_v both_o choice_n good_a &_o also_o he_o may_v resist_v divyn_a grace_n itself_o god_n a_o man_n may_v withstand_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n because_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n infer_v no_o violence_n against_o the_o will_n of_o man_n neither_o be_v he_o force_v against_o his_o will_n neither_o be_v he_o necssitate_n but_o god_n call_v he_o obey_v or_o disobeye_n and_o after_o his_o own_o will_n and_o free_a option_n either_o accept_v or_o refuse_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n so_o that_o will_v when_o he_o deliberate_v he_o may_v in_o that_o instant_n will_n and_o not_o will_n so_o that_o whether_o in_o volution_n &_o deliberation_n it_o be_v proper_a in_o his_o will_n the_o verity_n be_v without_o controversy_n in_o man_n of_o sound_a judgement_n as_o holy_a scripture_n witness_n freewill_n man_n have_v freewill_n as_o gen._n 4_o v._n 7._o where_o god_n spaken_v to_o cain_n say_v if_o thou_o do_v well_o shall_v thou_o not_o receive_v waidge_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v evil_a forthwith_o in_o the_o door_n be_v sin_n herupon_o have_v not_o a_o man_n power_n to_o rule_v his_o own_o passion_n &_o may_v he_o not_o eshew_v sin_n proceed_v from_o that_o passion_n therefore_o let_v all_o heretic_n with_o luther_n be_v ashamed_a who_o make_v the_o freewill_n of_o man_n servile_a and_o to_o be_v force_v and_o necessitate_v which_o god_n himself_o witness_v to_o have_v make_v free_a and_o make_v man_n lord_n endue_v with_o reason_n &_o not_o servant_n or_o yet_o his_o will_n to_o be_v servile_a and_o abandon_v but_o to_o be_v lord_n of_o himself_o likewise_o our_o saviour_n speak_v to_o jerusalem_n matth._n 23._o say_v how_o oft_o will_v i_o have_v gather_v thy_o child_n but_o thou_o will_v not_o in_o those_o word_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n be_v willing_a and_o man_n will_v not_o therefore_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n the_o freewill_n of_o man_n be_v not_o force_v and_o necessitate_v but_o remit_v in_o his_o own_o disposition_n and_o option_n likewise_o eccl._n 31._o v._o 10._o it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o righteous_a man_n in_o his_o commendation_n say_v who_o might_n transgress_v and_o be_v not_o transgress_v may_v do_v evil_a and_o not_o do_v it_o to_o this_o the_o disciple_n accord_v with_o his_o master_n 1._o cor_fw-la 7._o v._n 37._o say_v in_o the_o commendation_n of_o virginity_n who_o have_v dispose_v firm_a in_o his_o h●rt_n not_o have_v necessity_n have_v power_n over_o his_o own_o will_n &_o have_v so_o decree_v in_o his_o hart_n to_o keep_v his_o virginity_n do_v well_o in_o which_o word_n s._n paul_n plain_o attribute_n power_n in_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o take_v away_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n be_v a_o consequent_a to_o deny_v the_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n creed_n the_o denial_n of_o frewill_n be_v to_o deny_v on_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n to_o wit_n from_o heaven_n shall_v be_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o queick_n and_o the_o dead_a to_o what_o end_n shall_v a_o judgement_n be_v when_o there_o be_v no_o merit_n nor_o demerit_n to_o be_v judge_v neither_o shall_v there_o be_v praise_n nor_o dispraise_n neither_o reward_n nor_o punishment_n for_o to_o these_o effect_n be_v a_o judgement_n &_o consequent_o it_o include_v liberty_n of_o freewill_n as_o teach_v s._n augustin_n moreover_o to_o what_o end_n be_v all_o the_o exhortation_n to_o penance_n and_o conversion_n to_o god_n and_o to_o what_o effect_n be_v the_o commandment_n give_v to_o what_o end_n be_v inhibition_n threaten_n promise_n to_o flee_v from_o sin_n and_o consequent_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n if_o the_o liberty_n of_o frewil_n be_v extinguish_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o
be_v absolute_o defyne_v from_o eternity_n and_o that_o true_o before_o all_o for_o sight_n and_o prevision_n answer_n in_o the_o crucify_a of_o christ_n first_o there_o be_v the_o action_n of_o jew_n in_o crucify_a christ_n which_o because_o it_o be_v evil_a can_v not_o be_v preordinat_a of_o god_n in_o particular_a but_o only_o permit_v second_o the_o passion_n which_o be_v good_a of_o christ_n part_n and_o in_o the_o presuppose_a mediate_v knowledge_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o know_v of_o the_o hypothese_n what_o shall_v be_v future_a absolute_o be_v will_v and_o predefined_a of_o god_n as_o also_o of_o absolute_a will_n of_o christ_n and_o love_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n objection_n predestination_n from_o eternity_n be_v make_v &_o decree_v without_o we_o of_o we_o neither_o may_v we_o obtain_v the_o end_n but_o by_o mediate_v efficacy_n which_o be_v include_v in_o predestination_n from_o eternity_n concern_v we_o without_o we_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n and_o with_o preiudging_a humane_a freewill_n be_v the_o infallible_a event_n answer_n the_o sequel_n be_v false_a for_o who_o have_v forseen_v &_o have_v preordinat_a glory_n to_o the_o predestinat_a also_o true_o before_o have_v forseen_v and_o preordinat_a mediate_n by_o which_o such_o end_n be_v acquyre_v and_o obtain_v with_o frewill_n for_o this_o disposition_n in_o itself_o include_v a_o congruall_a cause_n of_o predestination_n by_o which_o god_n so_o convenient_o move_v the_o will_n of_o man_n even_o as_o it_o be_v apt_a and_o dispose_v to_o follow_v the_o mover_n who_o by_o his_o preven_a grace_n know_v how_o to_o dispose_v that_o the_o call_v contemn_v and_o refuse_v not_o the_o caller_n but_o to_o consent_v and_o accord_n which_o all_o consist_v in_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n qvaestio_n xxvi_o of_o the_o keep_v of_o the_o commandment_n wherefore_o say_v the_o papist_n that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v possible_a to_o be_v keep_v see_v the_o imbecility_n of_o the_o flesh_n withstand_v luth._o lib_n de_fw-fr libert_n christian_n calu._n lib._n 2._o inst_z cap._n 5._o §_o 6.7_o answer_n the_o keep_n and_o observance_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v possible_a with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o grace_n be_v ever_o ready_a if_o we_o will_v accept_v of_o it_o help_n the_o commandment_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n help_n for_o god_n propones_fw-la to_o we_o a_o easy_a yock_n which_o be_v both_o easy_a and_o sweat_n fare_v alienat_fw-la to_o impossibility_n which_o the_o protestant_n maxim_n hold_v impossible_a that_o a_o man_n may_v as_o easy_o touch_v the_o heaven_n with_o his_o finger_n as_o to_z keep_v the_o commandment_n belie_v the_o holy_a ghost_n impossible_a with_o heretic_n be_v impossible_a and_o withstand_v the_o scripture_n which_o bear_v evidence_n of_o the_o facility_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o first_o speaken_v in_o deut._n 30._o v._o 11._o the_o commandment_n which_o this_o day_n i_o command_v thou_o it_o be_v not_o above_o thou_o nor_o place_v fare_n from_o thou_o not_o in_o heaven_n that_o thou_o shall_v say_v who_o shall_v go_v up_o to_o heaven_n &_o bring_v it_o to_o we_o and_o cause_v we_o hear_v it_o that_o we_o may_v do_v it_o neither_o be_v it_o beyond_o the_o sea_n that_o thou_o shall_v say_v who_o shall_v go_v over_o the_o sea_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o we_o and_o make_v we_o hear_v it_o that_o we_o may_v do_v it_o whereby_o excuse_n may_v be_v pretend_v but_o he_o say_v commandment_n no_o excuse_n can_v be_v pretend_v in_o not_o keep_v the_o commandment_n my_o word_n be_v near_o thou_o in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o hart_n that_o thou_o may_v do_v it_o in_o which_o express_o he_o say_v that_o the_o commandment_n be_v in_o our_o possibility_n to_o keep_v they_o with_o the_o necessary_a help_n of_o god_n grace_n for_o if_o they_o be_v impossible_a and_o importable_a they_o shall_v be_v above_o we_o that_o we_o may_v perceive_v their_o impossibility_n and_o just_o pretend_v excuse_n neither_o will_v god_n command_v impossibility_n to_o we_o know_v our_o weakness_n but_o he_o say_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v in_o thy_o hart_n and_o in_o thy_o mouth_n to_o do_v they_o therefore_o what_o be_v within_o we_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o and_o see_v the_o commandment_n be_v in_o our_o hart_n &_o mouth_n in_o this_o they_o be_v annex_v to_o our_o possibility_n for_o christ_n say_v my_o yock_n be_v easy_a and_o my_o burden_n be_v light_a matth._n 11._o v._n 30._o but_o what_o be_v easy_a and_o light_n must_v be_v portable_a and_o possible_a and_o even_o so_o be_v his_o commandment_n this_o approve_v s._n john_n 1._o epist_n cap._n 3._o say_v his_o commandment_n be_v not_o heavy_a &_o what_o be_v more_o heavy_a than_o a_o impossibility_n no_o man_n be_v commend_v in_o observe_v that_o cruel_a which_o be_v impossible_a but_o many_o be_v high_o commend_v in_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n as_o zacharias_n and_o elizabeth_n who_o be_v both_o just_a before_o god_n and_o walk_v in_o all_o his_o commandment_n and_o iustification_n without_o fault_n luc._n 1._o and_o david_n be_v call_v a_o man_n according_a to_o the_o hart_n of_o god_n &_o walk_v in_o all_o his_o will_n act._n 13._o v._n 23._o herein_o they_o be_v attribute_v just_a and_o righteous_a in_o keep_v and_o walk_v in_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v never_o have_v this_o commendation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o his_o write_a word_n for_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n we_o shall_v find_v nothing_o command_v that_o be_v not_o in_o our_o possibility_n nyghbour_n commandment_n be_v give_v to_o be_v keep_v and_o not_o contrary_a many_o have_v love_v god_n sincere_o and_o their_o nyghbour_n so_o whatsoever_o precept_n be_v command_v to_o be_v do_v of_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v obey_v for_o to_o what_o end_n be_v a_o commandment_n give_v if_o it_o be_v not_o observe_v for_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o that_o which_o be_v impossible_a ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n moreover_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o many_o with_o syncer_n love_n and_o affection_n have_v love_v god_n and_o their_o neighbour_n for_o the_o apostle_n boo_v in_o that_o say_v rom._n 8._o what_o shall_v separat_fw-la we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n who_o doubt_n but_o love_n be_v the_o end_n and_o fulfil_v of_o the_o commandment_n which_o the_o apostle_n assure_v himself_o to_o have_v likewise_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o faithful_a roman_n cap._n 15._o v._n 14._o to_o be_v full_a of_o perfection_n of_o who_o he_o say_v but_o i_o be_o certain_a brethren_n and_o i_o myself_o be_o presuade_v of_o you_o that_o you_o be_v full_a of_o love_n and_o to_o the_o coll._n 1._o v._n 4._o h._n say_v likewise_o hear_v of_o your_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesu_n commandment_n love_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o love_n which_o you_o have_v in_o all_o the_o saint_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o love_n be_v not_o without_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n because_o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o the_o end_n which_o be_v perfection_n but_o be_v mediate_n and_o see_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n be_v love_n therefore_o to_o attain_v to_o this_o end_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o have_v keep_v the_o commandemendt_n to_o this_o say_v s._n john_n epist_n 1._o cap._n 5._o v._n 3._o this_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o likewise_o christ_n say_v john_n 14._o v._n 23._o if_o any_o man_n love_n i_o let_v he_o keep_v my_o word_n and_o s._n paul_n rom._n 13._o say_v he_o that_o love_v fulfille_v the_o law_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o the_o cruel_a of_o reason_n be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n which_o be_v grave_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n that_o none_o be_v oblige_v to_o a_o impossibility_n for_o as_o s._n aug._n say_v no_o man_n sin_n in_o that_o in_o which_o he_o can_v eshew_v so_o that_o god_n shall_v proceed_v very_o injust_o against_o man_n if_o he_o shall_v oblige_v he_o commandment_n reason_n be_v a_o rule_n in_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n to_o a_o impossibility_n how_o unreasonable_a shall_v god_n be_v to_o command_v we_o to_o do_v that_o no_o earthly_a prince_n will_v bid_v his_o subject_n do_v for_o if_o god_n command_v we_o what_o we_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o do_v he_o be_v unreasonable_a &_o a_o tyrant_n and_o if_o he_o have_v make_v we_o impotent_a and_o command_v we_o to_o do_v it_o the_o fault_n be_v he_o and_o not_o we_o if_o we_o transgress_v his_o commandment_n and_o therefore_o fore_o with_o s._n hierom._n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v who_o say_v god_n to_o command_v any_o thing_n impossible_a to_o man_n objection_n the_o precept_n of_o love_n as_o in_o deut._n cap._n 6._o v._n 5._o be_v say_v thou_o
obtain_n of_o blessedness_n which_o only_a faith_n faille_n to_o that_o end_n the_o doctor_n never_o dream_v that_o it_o shall_v suffice_v without_o good_a work_n and_o far_o less_o that_o faith_n can_v save_v any_o man_n without_o work_n qvaestio_n xxix_o of_o the_o incertitude_n of_o righteousness_n wherefore_o deny_v the_o papist_n that_o a_o man_n of_o his_o own_o proper_a righteousness_n be_v uncertain_a see_v the_o spirit_n himself_o giveth_z testimony_n to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v write_v rom._n 8._o v._n 16._o &_o luth._o art_n 10.11_o kem._n in_o exam_n sess_v 6._o &_o calu._n in_o antid_v sess_v 6._o &_o lib._n 3._o just_a cap._n 2._o §_o 16_o 17.39_o 40._o answer_n if_o you_o affirm_v with_o your_o rabbin_n that_o all_o the_o faithful_a assure_o and_o infallible_o aught_o to_o believe_v with_o themselves_o sin_n not_o way_n to_o be_v impute_v prayer_n who_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n shall_v not_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n because_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o what_o effect_n rehearse_v you_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o why_o ask_v you_o remission_n of_o sin_n say_n forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n etc._n etc._n why_o be_v not_o this_o prayer_n reject_v aswell_o as_o the_o puritan_n in_o scotland_n have_v reject_v the_o belief_n for_o if_o you_o hold_v this_o opinion_n infallible_a and_o true_a of_o the_o certitude_n of_o righteousness_n the_o lord_n prayer_n be_v no_o way_n profitable_a or_o necessary_a as_o be_v mention_v already_o in_o the_o second_o quaestion_n in_o discover_v only_a faith_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o no_o man_n howsoever_o just_a and_o holy_a can_v attribute_v unto_o his_o own_o righteousness_n without_o peculiar_a revelation_n of_o god_n that_o infallibiliter_fw-la confidence_n in_o his_o own_o righteousness_n which_o be_v prope_v sin_n no_o man_n be_v certain_a of_o grace_n farelesse_a of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o ground_v upon_o common_a revelation_n make_v in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o thereby_o any_o shall_v know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v uncertain_a which_o proposition_n if_o it_o be_v true_a job_n will_v have_v be_v more_o bold_a nor_o any_o protestant_n who_o as_o it_o be_v doubt_v say_v howbeit_o i_o be_v simple_a yetnotwithstanding_n my_o soul_n be_v ignorant_a of_o that_o cap._n 9_o v._n 21._o where_o distinct_o by_o the_o name_n of_o simplicit_o he_o name_v his_o own_o righteousness_n absolute_o to_o be_v unknown_a as_o think_v he_o will_v say_v albeit_o i_o be_o just_a notwithstanding_o i_o can_v confidt_fw-ge to_o it_o assure_o moreover_o this_o assertion_n be_v oppose_v to_o reason_n for_o whosoever_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n &_o estate_n of_o grace_n it_o fallow_v of_o necessity_n to_o have_v the_o same_o certitude_n of_o their_o conversion_n to_o god_n with_o true_a penance_n and_o other_o motive_n of_o faith_n as_o charity_n patience_n and_o perseverance_n etc._n etc._n requisite_a to_o justification_n &_o inteire_n receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o none_o be_v that_o can_v promise_v to_o themselves_o such_o certitude_n for_o no_o man_n be_v assure_v of_o his_o disposition_n to_o be_v supernatural_a or_o in_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o have_v a_o perfect_a intention_n therefore_o no_o man_n without_o special_a revelation_n of_o god_n be_v certain_a to_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o consequent_o the_o rabbi_n of_o the_o reform_a synagogue_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o serpent_n in_o paradise_n who_o while_o he_o promise_v to_o our_o first_o parent_n knowledge_n spoil_v he_o of_o knowledge_n &_o bring_v he_o in_o gross_a ignorance_n even_o so_o while_o they_o will_v teach_v the_o confidence_n of_o rightousnes_n to_o justification_n send_v we_o away_o empty_a of_o righteousness_n but_o wrap_v in_o gross_a ignorance_n with_o presumption_n as_o at_o length_n be_v discuss_v in_o the_o three_o quaestion_n ut_fw-la sup_n objection_n it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 4._o v._n 16._o that_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n according_a to_o grace_n that_o the_o promise_n may_v be_v firm_a which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o we_o be_v iustify_v by_o only_a faith_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a to_o be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n answer_n the_o apostle_n mean_v a_o other_o thing_n for_o he_o teach_v man_n to_o be_v iustify_v by_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n without_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o by_o that_o faith_n we_o be_v make_v certain_a and_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v fulfil_v and_o this_o assumption_n be_v prove_v in_o abraham_n who_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v a_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n so_o that_o this_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v make_v to_o abraham_n and_o his_o fellower_n of_o faith_n whether_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n or_o after_o without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n objection_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 8_o v._n 38.39_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n neither_o angel_n etc._n etc._n neither_o any_o creature_n may_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n therefore_o in_o this_o life_n we_o have_v certitude_n of_o grace_n through_o the_o certitude_n of_o god_n love_n which_o argument_n caluin_n vehement_o urge_v lib._n 3_o inst_z cap_n 2._o §_o 40._o that_o this_o certitude_n be_v not_o only_o for_o s._n paul_n but_o also_o it_o be_v a_o certitude_n appertain_a to_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o a_o perseverance_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n answer_n this_o word_n i_o be_o certain_a or_o as_o caluin_n will_v i_o be_o persuade_v speak_v not_o of_o the_o certitude_n of_o only_a faith_n neither_o infallible_o of_o the_o faith_n itself_o but_o only_o of_o moral_a confidence_n trust_n &_o hope_n as_o be_v probable_a of_o the_o frequent_a common_a phrase_n as_o rom._n cap._n 15_o v._n 14._o where_o the_o apostle_n speak_v confident_o of_o the_o roman_n saying_n and_o i_o myself_o also_o be_o persuade_v of_o you_o what_o be_v else_o this_o persuasion_n but_o to_o confidt_fw-ge well_n likewise_o 2._o tom._n c._n 1._o v._n 5._o the_o apostle_n repeat_v the_o same_o say_v when_o i_o call_v to_o remembrance_n the_o unfeigned_a faith_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o duelt_fw-mi first_fw-mi in_o thy_o grandmother_n lois_fw-fr and_o in_o thy_o mother_n ewnice_n i_o be_o certain_a it_o dwell_v in_o thou_o also_o here_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o a_o good_a confidence_n and_o trust_n of_o they_o to_o have_v piety_n to_o salvation_n not_o to_o boo_v of_o faith_n but_o to_o hope_v to_o have_v it_o objection_n it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 8._o v._n 16._o that_o the_o spirit_n himself_o beire_n witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o likewise_o s._n john_n 1_o epist_n cap._n 5._o v._n 10._o say_v who_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n himself_o but_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n bring_v certitude_n therefore_o all_o be_v certain_a in_o themselves_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n answer_n the_o scripture_n be_v false_o allege_v because_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o roman_n be_v that_o you_o h._n ghost_n with_o diverse_a miracle_n &_o distribution_n of_o gift_n do_v work_v wonderful_a thing_n in_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n unto_o all_o those_o who_o worship_v and_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o keep_v it_o in_o life_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o this_o manner_n also_o be_v understand_v that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o gal._n 4._o v._n 6._o because_o you_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n in_o your_o heart_n which_o cry_v abba_fw-mi father_n &_o this_o witness_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n &_o to_o no_o private_a person_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v gal._n 3._o v._n 26._o say_v for_o you_o be_v all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesu_n and_o likewise_o these_o place_n verify_v the_o same_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v promise_v and_o give_v to_o his_o chrurch_n as_o expounde_n all_o the_o ancient_a father_n 19_o 1._o cor_fw-la 2._o v._n 12._o 1._o john_n 3._o v._n 14_o &_o 4._o v._o 13_o &_o 5._o v._o 19_o and_o not_o particular_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o only_o one_o for_o albeit_o in_o the_o righteous_a man_n this_o affirmative_a may_v be_v attribute_v notwithstanding_o not_o so_o real_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a moral_a certitude_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n &_o good_a life_n with_o hatred_n to_o
sin_n and_o love_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o not_o without_o fear_n and_o tremble_a if_o they_o consider_v their_o own_o infirmity_n and_o weakness_n and_o as_o concern_v that_o say_v of_o s._n john_n 1._o cap._n v._o 10._o who_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n in_o himself_o it_o be_v true_a to_o wit_n by_o faith_n believe_v the_o verity_n which_o god_n witness_n so_o that_o this_o place_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o testimony_n of_o righteousness_n but_o bea●e_a witness_n and_o give_v testimony_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o the_o father_n exhibite_v of_o his_o son_n and_o be_v believe_v of_o man_n objection_n the_o apostle_n say_v 1._o cor_fw-la 13_o v._n 8._o that_o charity_n never_o faille_n but_o we_o have_v this_o charity_n in_o baptism_n which_o we_o be_v certain_a never_o to_o lease_n therefore_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o grace_n and_o consequent_o of_o righteousness_n answer_n saint_n paul_n deny_v not_o but_o that_o charity_n may_v faill_n in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o the_o other_o world_n to_o come_v it_o shall_v not_o faill_n for_o if_o faith_n and_o hope_n may_v fail_v why_o not_o also_o charity_n ergo_fw-la we_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o our_o righteousness_n objection_n the_o apostle_n say_v 2._o cor_fw-la 1._o v._n 12._o this_o be_v our_o glory_n the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n but_o a_o testimony_n be_v none_o except_o it_o be_v certain_a answer_n the_o testimony_n of_o conscience_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n glory_n and_o reioyse_n or_o by_o who_o example_n we_o may_v glory_v the_o like_a to_o wit_n be_v not_o to_o be_v guilty_a in_o ourselves_o of_o sin_n and_o to_o live_v confident_o we_o to_o stand_v in_o grace_n which_o testimony_n of_o conscience_n consist_v not_o in_o righteousness_n of_o work_n but_o in_o sanctification_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n for_o all_o rejoice_v annex_v with_o fear_n be_v not_o assure_v and_o certain_a for_o it_o it_o say_v ps_n 2_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o rejoice_v in_o he_o with_o tremble_v objection_n many_o be_v certain_a in_o themselves_o to_o have_v walk_v righteous_o and_o to_o have_v eshew_v all_o mortal_a sin_n which_o can_v be_v without_o justify_v grace_n therefore_o must_v certain_o and_o assure_o any_o man_n may_v know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o consequent_o certain_a of_o his_o salvation_n answer_n the_o minor_n be_v false_a for_o it_o be_v say_v ps_n 18._o v._n 13._o who_o do_v know_v his_o sin_n and_o s._n peter_n 2._o epist_n cap._n 1._o v._n 10_o exhort_v by_o the_o fly_n of_o sin_n to_o make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a by_o good_a work_n that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a call_v for_o whosoever_o persevere_fw-la not_o in_o vain_a be_v his_o vocation_n &_o consequent_o a_o man_n be_v neither_o certain_a of_o justify_v grace_n neither_o of_o salvation_n objection_n to_o deny_v this_o certitude_n of_o grace_n make_v man_n to_o doubt_v and_o despair_n ergo._n answer_n albeit_o his_o certitude_n of_o grace_n and_o only_a faith_n be_v exclude_v and_o deny_v there_o be_v no_o occasion_n of_o anxiety_n &_o doubt_n because_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n that_o bring_v consolation_n to_o go_v fordward_o in_o righteousness_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n as_o love_v charity_n contrition_n the_o eucharist_n tribulation_n as_o witness_v the_o apostle_n say_v 2._o cor_fw-la 7._o five_o 4_o above_o measure_n i_o rejoice_v in_o all_o our_o tribulation_n etc._n etc._n qvaestio_n xxx_o of_o the_o pureness_n of_o good_a work_n wherefore_o extoll_v the_o papist_n so_o much_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n see_v all_o good_a work_n whatsomever_o whosoever_o do_v of_o any_o man_n be_v sin_n and_o blot_v with_o impurity_n of_o the_o corrupt_a flesh_n and_o be_v make_v imperfect_a with_o a_o perpetual_a affection_n of_o imperfection_n so_o that_o as_o our_o arch-rabby_n teach_v that_o the_o very_o elect_a be_v guilty_a of_o sin_n before_o god_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o death_n luth_n art_n 31._o 32._o caluin_n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 11._o §_o 11._o &_o cap._n 14_o §_o 9.10.11_o &_o lib._n 4_o cap._n 15_o §_o 11._o answer_n what_o execrable_a assertion_n be_v affirm_v be_v there_o ghospeller_n who_o be_v empte_n of_o all_o good_a work_n and_o holiness_n follow_v the_o flesh_n must_v savour_n of_o the_o impurity_n of_o the_o flesh_n &_o consequent_o wild_a sinner_n and_o as_o brutish_a creature_n to_o follow_v their_o own_o imagination_n concern_v righteousness_n and_o good_a work_n god_n many_o good_a work_n be_v without_o sin_n and_o glorify_v god_n which_o we_o defend_v and_o confess_v that_o good_a man_n de_fw-la facto_fw-la may_v perform_v and_o exhibit_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n many_o good_a work_n meritorious_a and_o very_o to_o be_v without_o any_o spot_n of_o sin_n as_o undoubted_a faith_n teach_v and_o holy_a scripture_n bear_v witness_v for_o to_o what_o end_n do_v christ_n exhort_v man_n to_o good_a work_n if_o they_o be_v sin_n in_o themselves_o say_v matth._n 5_o five_o 16._o let_v your_o light_n thy_o before_o man_n that_o they_o may_v see_v your_o good_a work_n and_o glorify_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n but_o wicked_a and_o sinful_a work_n be_v not_o good_a neither_o be_v god_n glorify_v of_o they_o but_o in_o the_o contrary_n what_o be_v good_a and_o glorify_v god_n be_v not_o si●ne_v neither_o pollute_v of_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v verify_v second_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apolste_v who_o exhort_v they_o to_o follow_v good_a work_n show_v what_o offect_n follow_v they_o saying_n 2._o pet._n cap._n 1._o v._n 10._o in_o do_v of_o these_o thing_n you_o shall_v not_o sin_n which_o ●●hey_n have_v be_v sin_n the_o apostle_n peter_n so_o foolish_o world_n not_o have_v bid_v we_o to_o make_v our_o call_n &_o election_n sure_a by_o good_a work_n if_o they_o have_v not_o profit_v we_o and_o glorify_v god_n moreover_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor_fw-la 7._o v._n 38._o speak_v of_o virginity_n say_v it_o who_o give_v his_o virgin_n to_o matrimony_n do_v well_o and_o who_o do_v not_o do_v better_o if_o this_o positive_a gift_n marriage_n be_v not_o sin_n how_o much_o more_o excellent_a a_o work_n be_v virginity_n to_o be_v a_o work_n without_o a_o sin_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n commend_v the_o dignity_n of_o a_o bishop_n say_v 1._o tim._n 3._o v._n 1._o if_o any_o man_n desire_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n he_o desire_v a_o good_a worke●_n and_o last_o of_o all_o it_o be_v say_v to_o the_o great_a praise_n of_o job_n that_o in_o all_o his_o affliction_n he_o have_v not_o sin_v in_o his_o lip_n cap._n 1._o v._n 22._o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o many_o good_a work_n by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n may_v be_v accomplish_v and_o do_v without_o any_o spot_n of_o sin_n or_o any_o quality_n appertain_v to_o sin_n both_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o profyt_v of_o the_o doer_n sin_n if_o good_a work_n be_v sin_n god_n shall_v be_v a_o prayser_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o to_o say_v that_o our_o good_a work_n be_v defayl_v and_o spot_v with_o sin_n it_o shall_v follow_v that_o god_n shall_v praise_v evil_a work_n which_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o own_o goodness_n moreover_o reason_n accord_v with_o the_o scripture_n because_o there_o be_v no_o quality_n in_o man_n that_o necessitate_v and_o force_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v defayle_v and_o contaminat_fw-la his_o own_a work_n with_o sin_n neither_o be_v he_o move_v of_o god_n nor_o of_o his_o own_o nature_n to_o that_o evil_a see_v that_o god_n be_v no_o tempter_n of_o evil_a neither_o do_v nature_n desire_v of_o itself_o or_o work_v force_n or_o any_o violence_n neither_o the_o devil_n because_o he_o can_v compel_v violent_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n neither_o bow_n it_o or_o fraime_v it_o to_o his_o disposition_n and_o desire_v for_o if_o a_o man_n can_v do_v no_o good_a wo●●●_n without_o the_o blot_n and_o evil_a effect_n of_o sin_n it_o shall_v follow_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a merit_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v unprofitable_a and_o without_o effect_n to_o abolish_v sin_n and_o again_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n there_o shall_v be_v neither_o merit_n nor_o demerit_n reward_v &_o in_o the_o present_a time_n it_o be_v all_o a_o like_a to_o spoill_o and_o robe_n as_o to_o give_v alms_n &_o consequent_o mortal_a sin_n and_o habitual_a grace_n shall_v dwell_v and_o exist_v together_o and_o moreover_o in_o vain_a be_v all_o the_o exhortation_n &_o monition_n peruse_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o move_v man_n to_o penance_n mortification_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o l●fe_n if_o a_o man_n can_v do_v no_o good_a thing_n but_o sin_n and_o
proper_o of_o worth_n and_o right_a merit_v eternal_a life_n without_o any_o prejudice_n of_o god_n divine_a majesty_n which_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v vall_v with_o strong_a reason_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v that_o be_v not_o prevent_v with_o a_o malicious_a mind_n and_o carnal_a passion_n &_o who_o have_v the_o small_a taest_n in_o the_o divine_a scripture_n shall_v easy_o define_v this_o argument_n so_o that_o eccl_n 16_o v._o 15._o say_v all_o mercy_n make_v a_o place_n to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o work_n how_o evident_a be_v merit_n express_v to_o be_v a_o consequent_a of_o mercy_n what_o in_o this_o word_n be_v to_o be_v hate_v and_o abhor_v of_o the_o protestant_n if_o they_o love_v the_o scripture_n for_o if_o they_o dete_v the_o one_o they_o must_v detest_v the_o other_o and_o so_o the_o scripture_n be_v as_o abominable_a to_o they_o as_o the_o word_n merit_n and_o good_a work_n be_v next_o to_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la s._n paul_n avouch_v the_o same_o say_v heb._n 13._o v._o 16._o do_v good_a and_o to_o distribute_v forget_v not_o for_o with_o sacrifice_n god_n be_v promerited_a and_o likewise_o of_o these_o place_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n give_v to_o every_o man_n a_o reward_n &_o wage_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n condition_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o work_n which_o be_v nothing_o other_o then_o according_a to_o the_o good_a merit_n of_o the_o work_n or_o the_o evil_a as_o it_o be_v say_v psal_n 6._o v._n 13._o that_o god_n give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o likewise_o s._n matth._n 16._o v._n 27._o say_v that_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n then_o shall_v he_o give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o likewise_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor_fw-la 3._o v._n 8._o say_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v receive_v his_o proper_a wage_n according_a to_o his_o labour_n what_o be_v else_o merit_v but_o wage_n and_o a_o reward_n and_o a_o condign_a recompensation_n of_o every_o man_n labour_n &_o work_n but_o now_o if_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o merit_n which_o word_n the_o protestant_n abhor_v how_o be_v wage_n and_o reward_v distribute_v and_o give_v and_o likewise_o punishement_n for_o do_v not_o god_n punish_v man_n for_o evil_a according_a to_o the_o evil_a and_o remunerate_v man_n with_o eternal_a life_n for_o good_a work_n accord_v as_o they_o be_v good_a work_n and_o therefore_o see_v evil_a work_n of_o worth_n ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la merit_v this_o punishment_n which_o be_v eternal_a shall_v not_o good_a work_n and_o welldoing_a merit_n eternal_a life_n as_o a_o reward_n and_o a_o remuneration_n of_o good_a thing_n for_o if_o we_o observe_v peculiar_o the_o name_n of_o wage_n and_o reward_v allege_v of_o the_o apostle_n it_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o wage_n have_v no_o place_n but_o where_o be_v merit_n for_o they_o be_v correlative_n one_o with_o the_o other_o for_o there_o be_v due_a no_o wage_n where_o there_o be_v no_o merit_n neither_o follow_v merit_n but_o where_o there_o be_v work_n objection_n caluin_n lib._n 3_o inst_z cap._n 15._o §_o 2._o say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n improper_o be_v call_v wage_n see_v it_o be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o child_n ergo_fw-la answer_n wherefore_o be_v it_o rather_o improper_o say_v waidge_n than_o inheritance_n see_v the_o same_o be_v waidge_n and_o inheritance_n and_o the_o same_o with_o diverse_a title_n may_v be_v debt_n to_o we_o as_o appear_v evident_o in_o christ_n to_o who_o the_o accidental_a glory_n of_o his_o body_n be_v true_a waidge_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 2._o v._n 8.9_o he_o have_v humble_v himself_o and_o be_v make_v obedient_a to_o the_o death_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o which_o god_n have_v exalt_v he_o and_o have_v give_v he_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o all_o name_n etc._n etc._n for_o that_o he_o promerited_a the_o same_o through_o his_o humility_n and_o passion_n for_o if_o he_o have_v not_o promerited_a this_o accidental_a glory_n to_o his_o body_n as_o waidge_n the_o apostle_n have_v not_o say_v this_o word_n propter_fw-la quod_fw-la which_o waidge_n be_v also_o in_o heritance_n due_a to_o he_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o hypostatical_a union_n even_o so_o life_n eternal_a be_v inheritance_n to_o the_o just_a and_o innocent_a for_o somuch_o as_o they_o be_v adopt_v son_n of_o god_n by_o habitual_a grace_n which_o only_a title_n be_v dew_n to_o baptise_a infant_n and_o likewise_o life_n eternal_a be_v waidge_n to_o the_o child_n of_o adoption_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o merit_v it_o with_o good_a work_n do_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o call_v improper_o waidge_n more_o than_o inheritance_n see_v both_o the_o inheritance_n and_o waidge_n depend_v on_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n objection_n the_o lutheran_n argue_v that_o life_n eternal_a be_v call_v waidge_n not_o that_o it_o be_v give_v or_o due_a for_o good_a work_n but_o because_o it_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v due_a to_o we_o by_o promise_n and_o not_o of_o no_o merit_n answer_n i_o say_v a_o man_n instruct_v &_o confirm_v with_o habitual_a grace_n of_o god_n may_v exhibet_fw-la and_o do_v a_o work_v condign_a and_o worthy_a of_o eternal_a life_n because_o he_o be_v move_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o supernatural_a motion_n intend_v to_o life_n eternal_a and_o therefore_o for_o that_o cause_n these_o good_a work_n be_v so_o high_a and_o excellent_a as_o be_v the_o self_n life_n eternal_a and_o therefore_o with_o divyne_a promise_n join_v life_n eternal_a shall_v be_v debtfull_a to_o that_o work_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n that_o work_n shall_v merit_v true_o and_o proper_o life_n eternal_a as_o a_o merit_n and_o so_o our_o merit_n draw_v their_o own_o condition_n which_o be_v do_v and_o wrought_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n objection_n the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 6._o v._n 23._o that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v life_n eternal_a but_o that_o which_o be_v of_o grace_n be_v not_o debtfull_a to_o we_o by_o way_n of_o wage_n of_o righteousness_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v say_v psal_n 102_o v._n 4_o that_o god_n have_v crown_v we_o with_o mercy_n and_o compassion_n ergo_fw-la of_o grace_n and_o not_o of_o work_n be_v life_n eternal_a answer_n who_o be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o know_v not_o that_o life_n eternal_a be_v call_v grace_n because_o the_o condygne_a merit_n of_o life_n eternal_a be_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o say_v s._n aug._n epist_n 105._o for_o if_o s._n paul_n call_v death_n the_o stipend_n of_o sin_n even_o so_o the_o stipend_n of_o righteousness_n may_v be_v call_v life_n eternal_a or_o the_o stipend_n of_o death_n &_o stipend_n of_o life_n be_v merit_n &_o demerit_n as_o correlative_n be_v for_o in_o this_o the_o apostle_n have_v change_v a_o kind_n of_o speech_n that_o he_o may_v exclud_v ambition_n and_o pride_n out_o of_o the_o hart_n of_o man_n and_o especial_o such_o as_o will_v that_o life_n eternal_a shall_v be_v due_a and_o proper_o give_v for_o their_o own_o righteousness_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o witness_v s._n aug._n in_o epist_n 105._o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n call_v life_n eternal_a the_o grace_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v give_v for_o the_o reward_n of_o work_n do_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o see_v our_o work_n without_o grace_n as_o unto_o the_o life_n eternal_a it_o be_v attribute_v to_o grace_n as_o unto_o the_o principal_a cause_n that_o our_o work_n merit_v life_n eternal_a and_o consequent_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o psalm_n that_o he_o have_v crown_v we_o in_o mercy_n and_o compassion_n not_o that_o life_n eternal_a be_v our_o true_a waidge_n of_o due_a righteousness_n to_o our_o work_n but_o because_o the_o same_o work_n be_v do_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n albeit_o other_o expounde_n this_o place_n so_o that_o god_n with_o his_o mercy_n and_o benefit_n compass_n the_o just_a man_n about_o as_o with_o a_o crown_n objection_n when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o which_o be_v command_v say_v we_o be_v unprofitable_a seruamd_n what_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v ●e_v have_v do_v it_o therefore_o to_o unprofitable_a seruand_n wage_n be_v not_o due_a of_o righteousness_n answer_n our_o own_o work_n of_o themselves_o in_o a_o part_n to_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a and_o of_o no_o value_n without_o god_n because_o they_o draw_v all_o their_o dignity_n and_o worth_n of_o his_o grace_n notwithstanding_o good_a work_n lay_v and_o join_v with_o divine_a grace_n be_v very_o profitable_a according_a to_o that_o